kecilkan semua  

Teks -- Luke 22:1-71 (NET)

Tampilkan Strong
Konteks
Judas’ Decision to Betray Jesus
22:1 Now the Feast of Unleavened Bread, which is called the Passover, was approaching. 22:2 The chief priests and the experts in the law were trying to find some way to execute Jesus, for they were afraid of the people. 22:3 Then Satan entered Judas, the one called Iscariot, who was one of the twelve. 22:4 He went away and discussed with the chief priests and officers of the temple guard how he might betray Jesus, handing him over to them. 22:5 They were delighted and arranged to give him money. 22:6 So Judas agreed and began looking for an opportunity to betray Jesus when no crowd was present.
The Passover
22:7 Then the day for the feast of Unleavened Bread came, on which the Passover lamb had to be sacrificed. 22:8 Jesus sent Peter and John, saying, “Go and prepare the Passover for us to eat.” 22:9 They said to him, “Where do you want us to prepare it?” 22:10 He said to them, “Listen, when you have entered the city, a man carrying a jar of water will meet you. Follow him into the house that he enters, 22:11 and tell the owner of the house, ‘The Teacher says to you, “Where is the guest room where I may eat the Passover with my disciples?”’ 22:12 Then he will show you a large furnished room upstairs. Make preparations there.” 22:13 So they went and found things just as he had told them, and they prepared the Passover.
The Lord’s Supper
22:14 Now when the hour came, Jesus took his place at the table and the apostles joined him. 22:15 And he said to them, “I have earnestly desired to eat this Passover with you before I suffer. 22:16 For I tell you, I will not eat it again until it is fulfilled in the kingdom of God.” 22:17 Then he took a cup, and after giving thanks he said, “Take this and divide it among yourselves. 22:18 For I tell you that from now on I will not drink of the fruit of the vine until the kingdom of God comes.” 22:19 Then he took bread, and after giving thanks he broke it and gave it to them, saying, “This is my body which is given for you. Do this in remembrance of me.” 22:20 And in the same way he took the cup after they had eaten, saying, “This cup that is poured out for you is the new covenant in my blood.
A Final Discourse
22:21 “But look, the hand of the one who betrays me is with me on the table. 22:22 For the Son of Man is to go just as it has been determined, but woe to that man by whom he is betrayed!” 22:23 So they began to question one another as to which of them it could possibly be who would do this. 22:24 A dispute also started among them over which of them was to be regarded as the greatest. 22:25 So Jesus said to them, “The kings of the Gentiles lord it over them, and those in authority over them are called ‘benefactors.’ 22:26 Not so with you; instead the one who is greatest among you must become like the youngest, and the leader like the one who serves. 22:27 For who is greater, the one who is seated at the table, or the one who serves? Is it not the one who is seated at the table? But I am among you as one who serves. 22:28 “You are the ones who have remained with me in my trials. 22:29 Thus I grant to you a kingdom, just as my Father granted to me, 22:30 that you may eat and drink at my table in my kingdom, and you will sit on thrones judging the twelve tribes of Israel. 22:31 “Simon, Simon, pay attention! Satan has demanded to have you all, to sift you like wheat, 22:32 but I have prayed for you, Simon, that your faith may not fail. When you have turned back, strengthen your brothers.” 22:33 But Peter said to him, “Lord, I am ready to go with you both to prison and to death!” 22:34 Jesus replied, “I tell you, Peter, the rooster will not crow today until you have denied three times that you know me.” 22:35 Then Jesus said to them, “When I sent you out with no money bag, or traveler’s bag, or sandals, you didn’t lack anything, did you?” They replied, “Nothing.” 22:36 He said to them, “But now, the one who has a money bag must take it, and likewise a traveler’s bag too. And the one who has no sword must sell his cloak and buy one. 22:37 For I tell you that this scripture must be fulfilled in me, ‘And he was counted with the transgressors.’ For what is written about me is being fulfilled.” fulfilled.” 22:38 So they said, “Look, Lord, here are two swords.” Then he told them, “It is enough.”
On the Mount of Olives
22:39 Then Jesus went out and made his way, as he customarily did, to the Mount of Olives, and the disciples followed him. 22:40 When he came to the place, he said to them, “Pray that you will not fall into temptation.” 22:41 He went away from them about a stone’s throw, knelt down, and prayed, 22:42 “Father, if you are willing, take this cup away from me. Yet not my will but yours be done.” 22:43 Then an angel from heaven appeared to him and strengthened him. 22:44 And in his anguish he prayed more earnestly, and his sweat was like drops of blood falling to the ground. 22:45 When he got up from prayer, he came to the disciples and found them sleeping, exhausted from grief. 22:46 So he said to them, “Why are you sleeping? Get up and pray that you will not fall into temptation!”
Betrayal and Arrest
22:47 While he was still speaking, suddenly a crowd appeared, and the man named Judas, one of the twelve, was leading them. He walked up to Jesus to kiss him. 22:48 But Jesus said to him, “Judas, would you betray the Son of Man with a kiss?” 22:49 When those who were around him saw what was about to happen, they said, “Lord, should we use our swords?” 22:50 Then one of them struck the high priest’s slave, cutting off his right ear. 22:51 But Jesus said, “Enough of this!” And he touched the man’s ear and healed him. 22:52 Then Jesus said to the chief priests, the officers of the temple guard, and the elders who had come out to get him, “Have you come out with swords and clubs like you would against an outlaw? 22:53 Day after day when I was with you in the temple courts, you did not arrest me. But this is your hour, and that of the power of darkness!”
Jesus’ Condemnation and Peter’s Denials
22:54 Then they arrested Jesus, led him away, and brought him into the high priest’s house. But Peter was following at a distance. 22:55 When they had made a fire in the middle of the courtyard and sat down together, Peter sat down among them. 22:56 Then a slave girl, seeing him as he sat in the firelight, stared at him and said, “This man was with him too!” 22:57 But Peter denied it: “Woman, I don’t know him!” 22:58 Then a little later someone else saw him and said, “You are one of them too.” But Peter said, “Man, I am not!” 22:59 And after about an hour still another insisted, “Certainly this man was with him, because he too is a Galilean.” 22:60 But Peter said, “Man, I don’t know what you’re talking about!” At that moment, while he was still speaking, a rooster crowed. 22:61 Then the Lord turned and looked straight at Peter, and Peter remembered the word of the Lord, how he had said to him, “Before a rooster crows today, you will deny me three times.” 22:62 And he went outside and wept bitterly. 22:63 Now the men who were holding Jesus under guard began to mock him and beat him. 22:64 They blindfolded him and asked him repeatedly, “Prophesy! Who hit you?” 22:65 They also said many other things against him, reviling him. 22:66 When day came, the council of the elders of the people gathered together, both the chief priests and the experts in the law. Then they led Jesus away to their council 22:67 and said, “If you are the Christ, tell us.” But he said to them, “If I tell you, you will not believe, 22:68 and if I ask you, you will not answer. 22:69 But from now on the Son of Man will be seated at the right hand of the power of God.” 22:70 So they all said, “Are you the Son of God, then?” He answered them, “You say that I am.” 22:71 Then they said, “Why do we need further testimony? We have heard it ourselves from his own lips!”
Paralel   Ref. Silang (TSK)   ITL  

Nama Orang, Nama Tempat, Topik/Tema Kamus

Nama Orang dan Nama Tempat:
 · Galilean the region of Palestine north of Sameria and west of the upper Jordan River,a region west of Lake Galilee and north of the Jezreel Valley
 · Gentile a non-Jewish person
 · Iscariot the surname of Judas, the man who betrayed Christ
 · Israel a citizen of Israel.,a member of the nation of Israel
 · John a son of Zebedee; younger brother of James; the beloved disciple of Christ,a relative of Annas the high priest,a son of Mary the sister of Barnabas, and surnamed Mark,the father of Simon Peter
 · Judas a son of Mary and Joseph; half-brother of Jesus)
 · Mount of Olives a ridge east of Jerusalem across the Kidron Valley and rising about 200 feet above the city (NIV note)
 · Passover a Jewish religious feast. It may also refer to the lamb sacrificed and eaten at the feast.
 · Peter a man who was a leader among the twelve apostles and wrote the two epistles of Peter
 · Satan a person, male (evil angelic),an angel that has rebelled against God
 · Simon a son of Jonas and brother of Andrew; an apostle of Jesus Christ,a man who was one of the apostles of Christ and also called 'the Zealot',a brother of Jesus,a man who was a well-know victim of leprosy who had been healed by Jesus (NIV note),a man from Cyrene who was forced to carry the cross of Jesus,a Pharisee man in whose house Jesus' feet were washed with tears and anointed,the father of Judas Iscariot,a man who was a sorcerer in Samaria and who wanted to buy the gifts of the Spirit,a man who was a tanner at Joppa and with whom Peter was staying when Cornelius sent for him


Topik/Tema Kamus: JESUS CHRIST, 4E2 | JESUS CHRIST, 4E1 | LORD'S SUPPER; (EUCHARIST) | Jesus, The Christ | LAW IN THE NEW TESTAMENT | Peter | OSTRACA | Prisoners | Priest | Court | Passover | Government | Prayer | Readings, Select | Gethsemane | Temptation | PETER, SIMON | Church | JESUS CHRIST, THE ARREST AND TRIAL OF | Judas | selebihnya
Daftar Isi

Catatan Kata/Frasa
Robertson , Vincent , Wesley , JFB , Clarke , Calvin , Defender , TSK

Catatan Kata/Frasa
Poole , Lightfoot , PBC , Haydock , Gill

Catatan Ayat / Catatan Kaki
NET Notes , Geneva Bible

Catatan Rentang Ayat
Maclaren , MHCC , Matthew Henry , Barclay , Constable , College , McGarvey , Lapide

Lainnya
Evidence

kecilkan semua
Tafsiran/Catatan -- Catatan Kata/Frasa (per frasa)

Robertson: Luk 22:1 - The Passover The Passover ( pascha ) Both names (unleavened bread and passover) are used here as in Mar 14:1. Strictly speaking the passover was Nisan 14 and the ...

The Passover ( pascha )

Both names (unleavened bread and passover) are used here as in Mar 14:1. Strictly speaking the passover was Nisan 14 and the unleavened bread 15-21. This is the only place in the N.T. where the expression "the feast of unleavened bread"(common in lxx, Exodus 23:15, etc.) occurs, for Mar 14:1 has just "the unleavened bread."Mat 26:17 uses unleavened bread and passover interchangeably.

Robertson: Luk 22:1 - Drew nigh Drew nigh ( ēggizen ). Imperfect active. Mar 14:1; Mat 26:2 mention "after two days"definitely.

Drew nigh ( ēggizen ).

Imperfect active. Mar 14:1; Mat 26:2 mention "after two days"definitely.

Robertson: Luk 22:2 - Sought Sought ( ezētoun ). Imperfect active of zēteō , were seeking, conative imperfect.

Sought ( ezētoun ).

Imperfect active of zēteō , were seeking, conative imperfect.

Robertson: Luk 22:2 - How they might put him to death How they might put him to death ( to pōs anelōsin auton ). Second aorist active deliberative subjunctive (retained in indirect question) of anair...

How they might put him to death ( to pōs anelōsin auton ).

Second aorist active deliberative subjunctive (retained in indirect question) of anaireō , to take up, to make away with, to slay. Common in Old Greek. Luke uses it so here and in Luk 23:32 and eighteen times in the Acts, a favourite word with him. Note the accusative neuter singular article to with the whole clause, "as to the how, etc."

Robertson: Luk 22:2 - For they feared For they feared ( ephobounto gar ). Imperfect middle describing the delay of the "how."The triumphal entry and the temple speeches of Jesus had revea...

For they feared ( ephobounto gar ).

Imperfect middle describing the delay of the "how."The triumphal entry and the temple speeches of Jesus had revealed his tremendous power with the people, especially the crowds from Galilee at the feast. They were afraid to go on with their plan to kill him at the feast.

Robertson: Luk 22:3 - Satan entered into Judas Satan entered into Judas ( eisēlthen eis Ioudan ). Ingressive aorist active indicative. Satan was now renewing his attack on Jesus suspended tempor...

Satan entered into Judas ( eisēlthen eis Ioudan ).

Ingressive aorist active indicative. Satan was now renewing his attack on Jesus suspended temporarily (Luk 4:13) "until a good chance."He had come back by the use of Simon Peter (Mar 8:33; Mat 16:23). The conflict went on and Jesus won ultimate victory (Luk 10:18). Now Satan uses Judas and has success with him for Judas allowed him to come again and again (Joh 13:27). Judas evidently opened the door to his heart and let Satan in. Then Satan took charge and he became a devil as Jesus said (Joh 6:70). This surrender to Satan in no way relieves Judas of his moral responsibility.

Robertson: Luk 22:4 - Went away Went away ( apelthōn ). Second aorist active participle of aperchomai . He went off under the impulse of Satan and after the indignation over the r...

Went away ( apelthōn ).

Second aorist active participle of aperchomai . He went off under the impulse of Satan and after the indignation over the rebuke of Jesus at the feast in Simon’ s house (Joh 12:4-6).

Robertson: Luk 22:4 - Captains Captains ( stratēgois ). Leaders of the temple guards (Act 4:1), the full title, "captains of the temple,"occurs in Luk 22:52.

Captains ( stratēgois ).

Leaders of the temple guards (Act 4:1), the full title, "captains of the temple,"occurs in Luk 22:52.

Robertson: Luk 22:4 - How he might deliver him unto them How he might deliver him unto them ( to pōs autois paradōi auton ). The same construction as in Luk 22:2, the article to with the indirect ques...

How he might deliver him unto them ( to pōs autois paradōi auton ).

The same construction as in Luk 22:2, the article to with the indirect question and deliberative subjunctive second aorist active (paradōi ).

Robertson: Luk 22:5 - Were glad Were glad ( echarēsan ). Second aorist passive indicative of chairō as in Mar 14:11. Ingressive aorist, a natural exultation that one of the Tw...

Were glad ( echarēsan ).

Second aorist passive indicative of chairō as in Mar 14:11. Ingressive aorist, a natural exultation that one of the Twelve had offered to do this thing.

Robertson: Luk 22:5 - Covenanted Covenanted ( sunethento ). Second aorist indicative middle of suntithēmi . An old verb to put together and in the middle with one another. In the N...

Covenanted ( sunethento ).

Second aorist indicative middle of suntithēmi . An old verb to put together and in the middle with one another. In the N.T. outside of Joh 9:22 only in Luke (here and Act 23:20; Act 24:9). Luke only mentions "money"(argurion ), but not "thirty pieces"(Mat 26:15).

Robertson: Luk 22:6 - Consented Consented ( exōmologēsen ). Old verb, but the ancients usually used the simple form for promise or consent rather than the compound. This is the ...

Consented ( exōmologēsen ).

Old verb, but the ancients usually used the simple form for promise or consent rather than the compound. This is the only instance of this sense in the N.T. It is from homologos (homos , same, and legō , to say), to say the same thing with another and so agree.

Robertson: Luk 22:6 - Opportunity Opportunity ( eukarian ). From eukairos (eu , kairos ), a good chance. Old word, but in the N.T. only here and parallel passage Mat 26:16.

Opportunity ( eukarian ).

From eukairos (eu , kairos ), a good chance. Old word, but in the N.T. only here and parallel passage Mat 26:16.

Robertson: Luk 22:6 - In the absence of the multitude In the absence of the multitude ( ater ochlou ). Ater is an old preposition, common in the poets, but rare in prose. Also in Luk 22:35. It means "w...

In the absence of the multitude ( ater ochlou ).

Ater is an old preposition, common in the poets, but rare in prose. Also in Luk 22:35. It means "without,""apart from,"like chōris . The point of Judas was just this. He would get Jesus into the hands of the Sanhedrin during the feast in spite of the crowd. It was necessary to avoid tumult (Mat 26:5) because of the popularity of Jesus.

Robertson: Luk 22:7 - The day of unleavened bread came The day of unleavened bread came ( ēlthen hē hēmera tōn azumōn ). The day itself came, not simply was drawing nigh (Luk 22:1).

The day of unleavened bread came ( ēlthen hē hēmera tōn azumōn ).

The day itself came, not simply was drawing nigh (Luk 22:1).

Robertson: Luk 22:7 - Must be sacrificed Must be sacrificed ( edei thuesthai ). This was Nisan 14 which began at sunset. Luke is a Gentile and this fact must be borne in mind. The lamb must ...

Must be sacrificed ( edei thuesthai ).

This was Nisan 14 which began at sunset. Luke is a Gentile and this fact must be borne in mind. The lamb must be slain by the head of the family (Exo 12:6). The controversy about the day when Christ ate the last passover meal has already been discussed (Mat 26:17; Mar 14:12). The Synoptics clearly present this as a fact. Jesus was then crucified on Friday at the passover or Thursday (our time) at the regular hour 6 p.m. (beginning of Friday). The five passages in John (Joh 13:1.; Joh 13:27; Joh 18:28; Joh 19:14; Joh 19:31) rightly interpreted teach the same thing as shown in my Harmony of the Gospels for Students of the Life of Christ (pp.279-284).

Robertson: Luk 22:8 - Peter and John Peter and John ( Petron kai Iōanēn ). Mar 14:13 has only "two"while Mat 26:17 makes the disciples take the initiative. The word passover in this ...

Peter and John ( Petron kai Iōanēn ).

Mar 14:13 has only "two"while Mat 26:17 makes the disciples take the initiative. The word passover in this context is used either of the meal, the feast day, the whole period (including the unleavened bread). "Eat the passover"can refer to the meal as here or to the whole period of celebration (Joh 18:28).

Robertson: Luk 22:9 - Where wilt thou that we make ready? Where wilt thou that we make ready? ( Pou theleis hetoimasōmeṉ ). Deliberative first aorist active subjunctive without hina after theleis , per...

Where wilt thou that we make ready? ( Pou theleis hetoimasōmeṉ ).

Deliberative first aorist active subjunctive without hina after theleis , perhaps originally two separate questions.

Robertson: Luk 22:10 - When you are entered When you are entered ( eiselthontōn humōn ). Genitive absolute.

When you are entered ( eiselthontōn humōn ).

Genitive absolute.

Robertson: Luk 22:10 - Meet you Meet you ( sunantēsei humin ). An old verb sunantaō (from sun , with, and antaō , to face, anti ) with associative instrumental (humin ). S...

Meet you ( sunantēsei humin ).

An old verb sunantaō (from sun , with, and antaō , to face, anti ) with associative instrumental (humin ). See Mar 14:13 about the "man bearing a pitcher of water."

Robertson: Luk 22:11 - Goodman of the house Goodman of the house ( oikodespotēi ). Master of the house as in Mar 14:14; Mat 10:25. A late word for the earlier despotēs oikou .

Goodman of the house ( oikodespotēi ).

Master of the house as in Mar 14:14; Mat 10:25. A late word for the earlier despotēs oikou .

Robertson: Luk 22:11 - I shall eat I shall eat ( phagō ). Second aorist futuristic (or deliberative) subjunctive as in Mar 14:14.

I shall eat ( phagō ).

Second aorist futuristic (or deliberative) subjunctive as in Mar 14:14.

Robertson: Luk 22:12 - And he And he ( k'akeinos ). Kai and ekeinos (crasis ) where Mar 14:15 has kai autos . Literally, "And that one."See note on Mark for rest of the verse...

And he ( k'akeinos ).

Kai and ekeinos (crasis ) where Mar 14:15 has kai autos . Literally, "And that one."See note on Mark for rest of the verse.

Robertson: Luk 22:13 - He had said He had said ( eirēkei ). Past perfect active indicative of eipon where Mar 14:16 has eipen (second aorist).

He had said ( eirēkei ).

Past perfect active indicative of eipon where Mar 14:16 has eipen (second aorist).

Robertson: Luk 22:14 - Sat down Sat down ( anepesen ). Reclined, fell back (or up). Second aorist active of anapiptō .

Sat down ( anepesen ).

Reclined, fell back (or up). Second aorist active of anapiptō .

Robertson: Luk 22:15 - With desire I have desired With desire I have desired ( epithumiāi epethumēsa ). A Hebraism common in the lxx. Associative instrumental case of substantive and first aorist...

With desire I have desired ( epithumiāi epethumēsa ).

A Hebraism common in the lxx. Associative instrumental case of substantive and first aorist active indicative of same like a cognate accusative. Peculiar to Luke is all this verse. See this idiom in Joh 3:29; Act 4:17.

Robertson: Luk 22:15 - Before I suffer Before I suffer ( pro tou me pathein ). Preposition pro with articular infinitive and accusative of general reference, "before the suffering as to ...

Before I suffer ( pro tou me pathein ).

Preposition pro with articular infinitive and accusative of general reference, "before the suffering as to me."Pathein is second aorist active infinitive of paschō .

Robertson: Luk 22:16 - Until it be fulfilled Until it be fulfilled ( heōs hotou plērōthēi ). First aorist passive subjunctive of plēroō with heōs (hotou ), the usual construct...

Until it be fulfilled ( heōs hotou plērōthēi ).

First aorist passive subjunctive of plēroō with heōs (hotou ), the usual construction about the future. It seems like a Messianic banquet that Jesus has in mind (cf. Luk 14:15).

Robertson: Luk 22:17 - He received a cup He received a cup ( dexamenos potērion ). This cup is a diminutive of potēr . It seems that this is still one of the four cups passed during the ...

He received a cup ( dexamenos potērion ).

This cup is a diminutive of potēr . It seems that this is still one of the four cups passed during the passover meal, though which one is uncertain. It is apparently just before the formal introduction of the Lord’ s Supper, though he gave thanks here also (eucharistēsas ). It is from this verb eucharisteō (see also Luk 22:19) that our word Eucharist comes. It is a common verb for giving thanks and was used also for "saying grace"as we call it.

Robertson: Luk 22:18 - The fruit of the vine The fruit of the vine ( tou genēmatos tēs ampelou ). So Mar 14:25; Mat 26:29 and not oinos though it was wine undoubtedly. But the language all...

The fruit of the vine ( tou genēmatos tēs ampelou ).

So Mar 14:25; Mat 26:29 and not oinos though it was wine undoubtedly. But the language allows anything that is "the fruit of the vine."

Robertson: Luk 22:18 - Come Come ( elthēi ). Second aorist active subjunctive with heōs as in Luk 22:16. Here it is the consummation of the kingdom that Jesus has in mind,...

Come ( elthēi ).

Second aorist active subjunctive with heōs as in Luk 22:16. Here it is the consummation of the kingdom that Jesus has in mind, for the kingdom had already come.

Robertson: Luk 22:19 - Which is given for you Which is given for you ( to huper humōn didomenon ). Some MSS. omit these verses though probably genuine. The correct text in 1Co 11:24 has "which ...

Which is given for you ( to huper humōn didomenon ).

Some MSS. omit these verses though probably genuine. The correct text in 1Co 11:24 has "which is for you,"not "which is broken for you."It is curious to find the word "broken"here preserved and justified so often, even by Easton in his commentary on Luke, p. 320.

Robertson: Luk 22:19 - In remembrance of me In remembrance of me ( eis tēn emēn anamnēsin ). Objective use of the possessive pronoun emēn , not the subjective.

In remembrance of me ( eis tēn emēn anamnēsin ).

Objective use of the possessive pronoun emēn , not the subjective.

Robertson: Luk 22:19 - This do This do ( touto poieite ). Present active indicative, repetition, keep on doing this.

This do ( touto poieite ).

Present active indicative, repetition, keep on doing this.

Robertson: Luk 22:20 - After the supper After the supper ( meta to deipnēsai ). Preposition meta and the accusative articular infinitive. The textual situation here is confusing, chiefl...

After the supper ( meta to deipnēsai ).

Preposition meta and the accusative articular infinitive. The textual situation here is confusing, chiefly because of the two cups (Luk 22:17, Luk 22:20). Some of the documents omit the latter part of Luk 22:19 and all of Luk 22:20. It is possible, of course, that this part crept into the text of Luke from 1Co 11:24. But, if this part is omitted, Luke would then have the order reversed, the cup before the bread. So there are difficulties whichever turn one takes here with Luke’ s text whether one cup or two cups.

Robertson: Luk 22:20 - The New Covenant The New Covenant ( he kainē diathēkē ). See note on Mat 26:28; Mar 14:24 for "covenant."Westcott and Hort reject "new"there, but accept it here...

The New Covenant ( he kainē diathēkē ).

See note on Mat 26:28; Mar 14:24 for "covenant."Westcott and Hort reject "new"there, but accept it here and in 1Co 11:25. See Luk 5:38 for difference between kainē and nea . "The ratification of a covenant was commonly associated with the shedding of blood; and what was written in blood was believed to be indelible"(Plummer).

Robertson: Luk 22:20 - Poured out Poured out ( ekchunnomenon ). Same word in Mar 14:24; Mat 26:28 translated "shed."Late form present passive participle of ekchunnō of ekcheō , ...

Poured out ( ekchunnomenon ).

Same word in Mar 14:24; Mat 26:28 translated "shed."Late form present passive participle of ekchunnō of ekcheō , to pour out.

Robertson: Luk 22:21 - That betrayeth That betrayeth ( tou paradidontos ). Present active participle, actually engaged in doing it. The hand of Judas was resting on the table at the momen...

That betrayeth ( tou paradidontos ).

Present active participle, actually engaged in doing it. The hand of Judas was resting on the table at the moment. It should be noted that Luke narrates the institution of the Lord’ s Supper before the exposure of Judas as the traitor while Mark and Matthew reverse this order.

Robertson: Luk 22:22 - As it hath been determined As it hath been determined ( kata to hōrismenon ). Perfect passive participle of horizō , to limit or define, mark off the border, our "horizon."...

As it hath been determined ( kata to hōrismenon ).

Perfect passive participle of horizō , to limit or define, mark off the border, our "horizon."But this fact does not absolve Judas of his guilt as the "woe"here makes plain.

Robertson: Luk 22:23 - Which of them it was Which of them it was ( to tis ara eiē ex autōn ). Note the article to with the indirect question as in Luk 22:2, Luk 22:4. The optative eiē ...

Which of them it was ( to tis ara eiē ex autōn ).

Note the article to with the indirect question as in Luk 22:2, Luk 22:4. The optative eiē here is changed from the present active indicative estin , though it was not always done, for see dokei in Luk 22:24 where the present indicative is retained. They all had their hands on the table. Whose hand was it?

Robertson: Luk 22:24 - Contention Contention ( philoneikia ). An old word from philoneikos , fond of strife, eagerness to contend. Only here in the N.T.

Contention ( philoneikia ).

An old word from philoneikos , fond of strife, eagerness to contend. Only here in the N.T.

Robertson: Luk 22:24 - Greatest Greatest ( meizōn ). Common use of the comparative as superlative.

Greatest ( meizōn ).

Common use of the comparative as superlative.

Robertson: Luk 22:25 - Have lordship over Have lordship over ( kurieuousin ). From kurios . Common verb, to lord it over.

Have lordship over ( kurieuousin ).

From kurios . Common verb, to lord it over.

Robertson: Luk 22:25 - Benefactors Benefactors ( euergetai ). From eu and ergon . Doer of good. Old word. Here only in the N.T. Latin Benefactor is exact equivalent.

Benefactors ( euergetai ).

From eu and ergon . Doer of good. Old word. Here only in the N.T. Latin Benefactor is exact equivalent.

Robertson: Luk 22:26 - Become Become ( ginesthō ). Present middle imperative of ginomai . Act so. True greatness is in service, not in rank.

Become ( ginesthō ).

Present middle imperative of ginomai . Act so. True greatness is in service, not in rank.

Robertson: Luk 22:27 - But I But I ( Egō de ). Jesus dares to cite his own conduct, though their leader, to prove his point and to put a stop to their jealous contention for th...

But I ( Egō de ).

Jesus dares to cite his own conduct, though their leader, to prove his point and to put a stop to their jealous contention for the chief place at this very feast, a wrangling that kept up till Jesus had to arise and give them the object lesson of humility by washing their feet (John 13:1-20).

Robertson: Luk 22:28 - In my temptations In my temptations ( en tois peirasmois mou ). Probably "trials"is better here as in Jam 1:2 though temptations clearly in Jam 1:13This is the tragedy...

In my temptations ( en tois peirasmois mou ).

Probably "trials"is better here as in Jam 1:2 though temptations clearly in Jam 1:13This is the tragedy of the situation when Jesus is facing the Cross with the traitor at the table and the rest chiefly concerned about their own primacy and dignity.

Robertson: Luk 22:29 - And I appoint unto you And I appoint unto you ( k'agō diatithēmai humin ). They had on the whole been loyal and so Jesus passes on to them (diathēmai verb from whic...

And I appoint unto you ( k'agō diatithēmai humin ).

They had on the whole been loyal and so Jesus passes on to them (diathēmai verb from which diathēkē comes).

Robertson: Luk 22:30 - And ye shall sit And ye shall sit ( kathēsesthe ). But Westcott and Hort read in the text kathēsthe (present middle subjunctive with hina ). The picture seems ...

And ye shall sit ( kathēsesthe ).

But Westcott and Hort read in the text kathēsthe (present middle subjunctive with hina ). The picture seems to be that given in Mat 19:28 when Jesus replied to Peter’ s inquiry. It is not clear how literally this imagery is to be taken. But there is the promise of honour for the loyal among these in the end.

Robertson: Luk 22:31 - Asked to have you Asked to have you ( exēitēsato ). First aorist indirect middle indicative of exaiteō , an old verb to beg something of one and (middle) for one...

Asked to have you ( exēitēsato ).

First aorist indirect middle indicative of exaiteō , an old verb to beg something of one and (middle) for oneself. Only here in the N.T. The verb is used either in the good or the bad sense, but it does not mean here "obtained by asking"as margin in Revised Version has it.

Robertson: Luk 22:31 - That he might sift you That he might sift you ( tou siniasai ). Genitive articular infinitive of purpose. First aorist active infinitive of siniazō , to shake a sieve, to...

That he might sift you ( tou siniasai ).

Genitive articular infinitive of purpose. First aorist active infinitive of siniazō , to shake a sieve, to sift, from sinion , a winnowing fan. Later word. Here only in the N.T.

Robertson: Luk 22:32 - That thy faith fail not That thy faith fail not ( hina mē eklipēi he pistis mou ). Second aorist active subjunctive of purpose with hina after edeēthēn ( I praye...

That thy faith fail not ( hina mē eklipēi he pistis mou ).

Second aorist active subjunctive of purpose with hina after edeēthēn ( I prayed ) of ekleipō , old verb. Our word eclipse is this word. Evidently Jesus could not keep Satan from attacking Peter. He had already captured Judas. Did he not repeatedly attack Jesus? But he could and did pray for Peter’ s faith and his praying won in the end, though Peter stumbled and fell.

Robertson: Luk 22:32 - And do thou And do thou ( kai su ). The words single out Peter sharply.

And do thou ( kai su ).

The words single out Peter sharply.

Robertson: Luk 22:32 - Once thou hast turned again Once thou hast turned again ( pote epistrepsas ). First aorist active participle of epistrephō , common verb to turn to, to return. But the use of ...

Once thou hast turned again ( pote epistrepsas ).

First aorist active participle of epistrephō , common verb to turn to, to return. But the use of this word implied that Peter would fall though he would come back and "strengthen thy brethren."

Robertson: Luk 22:33 - To prison and to death To prison and to death ( eis phulakēn kai eis thanaton ). Evidently Peter was not flattered by the need of Christ’ s earnest prayers for his w...

To prison and to death ( eis phulakēn kai eis thanaton ).

Evidently Peter was not flattered by the need of Christ’ s earnest prayers for his welfare and loyalty. Hence this loud boast.

Robertson: Luk 22:34 - Until thou shalt thrice deny that thou knowest me Until thou shalt thrice deny that thou knowest me ( heōs tris me aparnēsēi eidenai ). "Thrice"is in all four Gospels here for they all give thi...

Until thou shalt thrice deny that thou knowest me ( heōs tris me aparnēsēi eidenai ).

"Thrice"is in all four Gospels here for they all give this warning to Peter (Mar 14:30; Mat 26:34; Luk 22:34; Joh 18:38). Peter will even deny knowing Jesus (eidenai ).

Robertson: Luk 22:35 - Without purse Without purse ( ater ballantiou ). Money bag or purse. Old word, but in the N.T. only in Luke (Luk 10:4; Luk 12:33; Luk 22:35).

Without purse ( ater ballantiou ).

Money bag or purse. Old word, but in the N.T. only in Luke (Luk 10:4; Luk 12:33; Luk 22:35).

Robertson: Luk 22:35 - Wallet Wallet ( pēras ). See note on Mat 10:10.

Wallet ( pēras ).

See note on Mat 10:10.

Robertson: Luk 22:35 - Lacked ye anything Lacked ye anything ( mē tinos husterēsate̱ ). Answer No expected (outhenos below). Ablative case after hustereō .

Lacked ye anything ( mē tinos husterēsate̱ ).

Answer No expected (outhenos below). Ablative case after hustereō .

Robertson: Luk 22:36 - Buy a sword Buy a sword ( agorasatō machairan ). This is for defence clearly. The reference is to the special mission in Galilee (Luk 9:1-6; Mar 6:6-13; Matthe...

Buy a sword ( agorasatō machairan ).

This is for defence clearly. The reference is to the special mission in Galilee (Luk 9:1-6; Mar 6:6-13; Matthew 9:35-11:1). They are to expect persecution and bitter hostility (Joh 15:18-21). Jesus does not mean that his disciples are to repel force by force, but that they are to be ready to defend his cause against attack. Changed conditions bring changed needs. This language can be misunderstood as it was then.

Robertson: Luk 22:38 - Lord, behold, here are two swords Lord, behold, here are two swords ( kurie idou machairai hōde duo ). They took his words literally. And before this very night is over Peter will u...

Lord, behold, here are two swords ( kurie idou machairai hōde duo ).

They took his words literally. And before this very night is over Peter will use one of these very swords to try to cut off the head of Malchus only to be sternly rebuked by Jesus (Mar 14:47; Mat 26:51.; Luk 22:50.; Joh 18:10.). Then Jesus will say: "For all that take the sword shall perish with the sword"(Mat 26:52). Clearly Jesus did not mean his language even about the sword to be pressed too literally. So he said: "It is enough"(Hikanon estin ). It is with sad irony and sorrow that Jesus thus dismisses the subject. They were in no humour now to understand the various sides of this complicated problem. Every preacher and teacher understands this mood, not of impatience, but of closing the subject for the present.

Robertson: Luk 22:39 - As his custom was As his custom was ( kata to ethos ). According to the custom (of him). It was because Judas knew the habit of Jesus of going to Gethsemane at night t...

As his custom was ( kata to ethos ).

According to the custom (of him). It was because Judas knew the habit of Jesus of going to Gethsemane at night that he undertook to betray him without waiting for the crowd to go home after the feast.

Robertson: Luk 22:40 - At the place At the place ( epi tou topou ). The place of secret prayer which was dear to Jesus.

At the place ( epi tou topou ).

The place of secret prayer which was dear to Jesus.

Robertson: Luk 22:40 - Pray that ye enter not into temptation Pray that ye enter not into temptation ( proseuchesthe mē eiselthein eis peirasmon ). "Keep on praying not to enter (ingressive aorist infinitive, ...

Pray that ye enter not into temptation ( proseuchesthe mē eiselthein eis peirasmon ).

"Keep on praying not to enter (ingressive aorist infinitive, not even once) into temptation."It is real "temptation"here, not just "trial."Jesus knew the power of temptation and the need of prayer. These words throw a light on the meaning of his language in Mat 6:13. Jesus repeats this warning in Luk 22:46.

Robertson: Luk 22:41 - About a stone’ s throw About a stone’ s throw ( hōsei lithou bolēn ). Accusative of extent of space. Luke does not tell of leaving eight disciples by the entrance ...

About a stone’ s throw ( hōsei lithou bolēn ).

Accusative of extent of space. Luke does not tell of leaving eight disciples by the entrance to Gethsemane nor about taking Peter, James, and John further in with him.

Robertson: Luk 22:41 - Kneeled down Kneeled down ( theis ta gonata ). Second aorist active participle from tithēmi . Mar 14:35 says "fell on the ground"and Mat 26:39 "fell on his face...

Kneeled down ( theis ta gonata ).

Second aorist active participle from tithēmi . Mar 14:35 says "fell on the ground"and Mat 26:39 "fell on his face."All could be true at different moments.

Robertson: Luk 22:41 - Prayed Prayed ( prosēucheto ). Imperfect middle, was praying, kept on praying.

Prayed ( prosēucheto ).

Imperfect middle, was praying, kept on praying.

Robertson: Luk 22:42 - If thou be willing If thou be willing ( ei boulei ). This condition is in the first petition at the start.

If thou be willing ( ei boulei ).

This condition is in the first petition at the start.

Robertson: Luk 22:42 - Be done Be done ( ginesthō ). Present middle imperative, keep on being done, the Father’ s will.

Be done ( ginesthō ).

Present middle imperative, keep on being done, the Father’ s will.

Robertson: Luk 22:43 - An angel An angel ( aggelos ). The angels visited Jesus at the close of the three temptations at the beginning of his ministry (Mat 4:11). Here the angel come...

An angel ( aggelos ).

The angels visited Jesus at the close of the three temptations at the beginning of his ministry (Mat 4:11). Here the angel comes during the conflict.

Robertson: Luk 22:44 - In an agony In an agony ( en agōniāi ). It was conflict, contest from agōn . An old word, but only here in the N.T. Satan pressed Jesus harder than ever be...

In an agony ( en agōniāi ).

It was conflict, contest from agōn . An old word, but only here in the N.T. Satan pressed Jesus harder than ever before.

Robertson: Luk 22:44 - As it were great drops of blood As it were great drops of blood ( hōsei thromboi haimatos ). Thick, clotted blood. An old word (thromboi ) common in medical works, but here only ...

As it were great drops of blood ( hōsei thromboi haimatos ).

Thick, clotted blood. An old word (thromboi ) common in medical works, but here only in the N.T. This passage (Luk 22:43, Luk 22:44) is absent from some ancient documents. Aristotle speaks of a bloody sweat as does Theophrastus.

Robertson: Luk 22:45 - Sleeping for sorrow Sleeping for sorrow ( koimōmenous apo tēs lupēs ). Luke does not tell of the three turnings of Jesus to the trusted three for human sympathy.

Sleeping for sorrow ( koimōmenous apo tēs lupēs ).

Luke does not tell of the three turnings of Jesus to the trusted three for human sympathy.

Robertson: Luk 22:46 - Why sleep ye? Why sleep ye? ( Ti katheudete̱ ). This reproach Luke gives, but not the almost bitter details in Mar 14:37-42; Mat 26:40-46).

Why sleep ye? ( Ti katheudete̱ ).

This reproach Luke gives, but not the almost bitter details in Mar 14:37-42; Mat 26:40-46).

Robertson: Luk 22:47 - Went before them Went before them ( proērcheto ). Imperfect middle. Judas was leading the band for he knew the place well (Joh 18:2).

Went before them ( proērcheto ).

Imperfect middle. Judas was leading the band for he knew the place well (Joh 18:2).

Robertson: Luk 22:48 - With a kiss With a kiss ( philēmati ). Instrumental case. Jesus challenges the act of Judas openly and calls it betrayal, but it did not stop him.

With a kiss ( philēmati ).

Instrumental case. Jesus challenges the act of Judas openly and calls it betrayal, but it did not stop him.

Robertson: Luk 22:49 - What would follow What would follow ( to esomenon ). Article and the future middle participle of eimi , to be.

What would follow ( to esomenon ).

Article and the future middle participle of eimi , to be.

Robertson: Luk 22:49 - Shall we smite with a sword? Shall we smite with a sword? ( ei pataxomen en machairēi̱ ). Note ei in a direct question like the Hebrew. Luke alone gives this question. Instr...

Shall we smite with a sword? ( ei pataxomen en machairēi̱ ).

Note ei in a direct question like the Hebrew. Luke alone gives this question. Instrumental use of en . They had the two swords already mentioned (Luk 22:38).

Robertson: Luk 22:50 - His right ear His right ear ( to ous autou to dexion ). Mar 14:47; Mat 26:51 do not mention "right,"but Luke the Physician does. Joh 18:10 follows Luke in this ite...

His right ear ( to ous autou to dexion ).

Mar 14:47; Mat 26:51 do not mention "right,"but Luke the Physician does. Joh 18:10 follows Luke in this item and also adds the names of Peter and of Malchus since probably both were dead by that time and Peter would not be involved in trouble.

Robertson: Luk 22:51 - Suffer us thus far Suffer us thus far ( eāte heōs toutou ). Present active imperative of eaō , to allow. But the meaning is not clear. If addressed to Peter and t...

Suffer us thus far ( eāte heōs toutou ).

Present active imperative of eaō , to allow. But the meaning is not clear. If addressed to Peter and the other disciples it means that they are to suffer this much of violence against Jesus. This is probably the idea. If it is addressed to the crowd, it means that they are to excuse Peter for his rash act.

Robertson: Luk 22:51 - He touched his ear and healed him He touched his ear and healed him ( hapsamenos tou otiou iasato auton ). Whether Jesus picked up the piece of the ear and put it back is not said. He...

He touched his ear and healed him ( hapsamenos tou otiou iasato auton ).

Whether Jesus picked up the piece of the ear and put it back is not said. He could have healed the wound without that. This miracle of surgery is given alone by Luke.

Robertson: Luk 22:52 - As against a robber? As against a robber? ( hōs epi lēistēṉ ). They were treating Jesus as if he were a bandit like Barabbas.

As against a robber? ( hōs epi lēistēṉ ).

They were treating Jesus as if he were a bandit like Barabbas.

Robertson: Luk 22:53 - But this is your hour But this is your hour ( all' hautē estin humōn hē hōra ). So Jesus surrenders. The moral value of his atoning sacrifice on the Cross consists...

But this is your hour ( all' hautē estin humōn hē hōra ).

So Jesus surrenders. The moral value of his atoning sacrifice on the Cross consists in the voluntariness of his death. He makes it clear that they have taken undue advantage of him in this hour of secret prayer and had failed to seize him in public in the temple. But "the power of darkness"(hē exousia tou skotous ), had its turn. A better day will come. The might, authority of darkness.

Robertson: Luk 22:54 - Into the high priest’ s house Into the high priest’ s house ( eis tēn oikian tou archiereōs ). Luke alone mentions "the house."Though it is implied in Mar 14:53; Mat 26:5...

Into the high priest’ s house ( eis tēn oikian tou archiereōs ).

Luke alone mentions "the house."Though it is implied in Mar 14:53; Mat 26:57.

Robertson: Luk 22:54 - Followed Followed ( ēkolouthei ). Imperfect, was following, as Mat 26:58; Joh 18:15. Curiously Mar 14:54 has the aorist.

Followed ( ēkolouthei ).

Imperfect, was following, as Mat 26:58; Joh 18:15. Curiously Mar 14:54 has the aorist.

Robertson: Luk 22:55 - When they had kindled a fire When they had kindled a fire ( periapsantōn pur ). Genitive absolute, first aorist active participle of periaptō , an old verb, but here only in ...

When they had kindled a fire ( periapsantōn pur ).

Genitive absolute, first aorist active participle of periaptō , an old verb, but here only in the N.T. Kindle around, make a good fire that blazes all over. It was April and cool at night. The servants made the fire.

Robertson: Luk 22:55 - And had sat down together And had sat down together ( kai sunkathisantōn ). Genitive absolute again. Note sun - (together), all had taken seats around the fire.

And had sat down together ( kai sunkathisantōn ).

Genitive absolute again. Note sun - (together), all had taken seats around the fire.

Robertson: Luk 22:55 - Peter sat in the midst of them Peter sat in the midst of them ( ekathēto ho Petros mesos autōn ). Imperfect tense, he was sitting, and note mesos , nominative predicate adjecti...

Peter sat in the midst of them ( ekathēto ho Petros mesos autōn ).

Imperfect tense, he was sitting, and note mesos , nominative predicate adjective with the genitive, like Joh 1:26, good Greek idiom.

Robertson: Luk 22:56 - In the light In the light ( pros to phōs ). Facing (pros ) the light, for the fire gave light as well as heat. Mar 14:65 has "warming himself in the light,"Joh...

In the light ( pros to phōs ).

Facing (pros ) the light, for the fire gave light as well as heat. Mar 14:65 has "warming himself in the light,"John (Joh 18:18, Joh 18:25) "warming himself."

Robertson: Luk 22:56 - Looking steadfastly Looking steadfastly ( atenisasa ). Favourite word in Luke (Luk 4:20, etc.) for gazing steadily at one.

Looking steadfastly ( atenisasa ).

Favourite word in Luke (Luk 4:20, etc.) for gazing steadily at one.

Robertson: Luk 22:56 - This man also This man also ( kai houtos ). As if pointing to Peter and talking about him. The other Gospels (Mar 14:67; Mat 26:69; Joh 18:25) make a direct addres...

This man also ( kai houtos ).

As if pointing to Peter and talking about him. The other Gospels (Mar 14:67; Mat 26:69; Joh 18:25) make a direct address to Peter. Both could be true, as she turned to Peter.

Robertson: Luk 22:57 - I know him not I know him not ( ouk oida auton ). Just as Jesus had predicted that he would do (Luk 22:34).

I know him not ( ouk oida auton ).

Just as Jesus had predicted that he would do (Luk 22:34).

Robertson: Luk 22:58 - After a little while another After a little while another ( meta brachu heteros ). Mat 26:71 makes it after Peter had gone out into the porch and mentions a maid as speaking as d...

After a little while another ( meta brachu heteros ).

Mat 26:71 makes it after Peter had gone out into the porch and mentions a maid as speaking as does Mar 14:69, while here the "other"(heteros ) is a man (masculine gender). It is almost impossible to co-ordinate the three denials in the four accounts unless we conceive of several joining in when one led off. This time Peter’ s denial is very blunt, "I am not."

Robertson: Luk 22:59 - After the space of about one hour After the space of about one hour ( diastasēs hōsei hōras mias ). Genitive absolute with second aorist active participle feminine singular of d...

After the space of about one hour ( diastasēs hōsei hōras mias ).

Genitive absolute with second aorist active participle feminine singular of diistēmi . This classical verb in the N.T. is used only by Luke (Luk 22:59; Luk 24:51; Act 27:28). It means standing in two or apart, about an hour intervening.

Robertson: Luk 22:59 - Confidently affirmed Confidently affirmed ( diischurizeto ). Imperfect middle, he kept affirming strongly. An old verb (dia , ischurizomai ), to make oneself strong, to ...

Confidently affirmed ( diischurizeto ).

Imperfect middle, he kept affirming strongly. An old verb (dia , ischurizomai ), to make oneself strong, to make emphatic declaration. In the N.T. only here and Act 12:15.

Robertson: Luk 22:59 - For he is a Galilean For he is a Galilean ( kai gar Galilaios estin ). Mat 26:73 makes it plain that it was his speech that gave him away, which see note.

For he is a Galilean ( kai gar Galilaios estin ).

Mat 26:73 makes it plain that it was his speech that gave him away, which see note.

Robertson: Luk 22:60 - I know not what thou sayest I know not what thou sayest ( ouk oida ho legeis ). Each denial tangles Peter more and more.

I know not what thou sayest ( ouk oida ho legeis ).

Each denial tangles Peter more and more.

Robertson: Luk 22:60 - While he yet spake While he yet spake ( eti lalountos autou ). Genitive absolute. Peter could hear the crowing all right.

While he yet spake ( eti lalountos autou ).

Genitive absolute. Peter could hear the crowing all right.

Robertson: Luk 22:61 - The Lord turned The Lord turned ( strapheis ho kurios ). Second aorist passive participle of strephō , coming verb. Graphic picture drawn by Luke alone.

The Lord turned ( strapheis ho kurios ).

Second aorist passive participle of strephō , coming verb. Graphic picture drawn by Luke alone.

Robertson: Luk 22:61 - Looked upon Peter Looked upon Peter ( eneblepsen tōi Petrōi ). Ingressive aorist active indicative of enblepō , an old and vivid verb, to glance at.

Looked upon Peter ( eneblepsen tōi Petrōi ).

Ingressive aorist active indicative of enblepō , an old and vivid verb, to glance at.

Robertson: Luk 22:61 - Remembered Remembered ( hupemnēsthē ). First aorist passive indicative of hupomimnēskō , common verb to remind one of something (hupo giving a suggest...

Remembered ( hupemnēsthē ).

First aorist passive indicative of hupomimnēskō , common verb to remind one of something (hupo giving a suggestion or hint). The cock crowing and the look brought swiftly back to Peter’ s mind the prophecy of Jesus and his sad denials. The mystery is how he had forgotten that warning.

Robertson: Luk 22:62 - And he went out and wept bitterly And he went out and wept bitterly ( kai exelthōn exō eklausen pikrōs ). A few old Latin documents omit this verse which is genuine in Mat 26:75...

And he went out and wept bitterly ( kai exelthōn exō eklausen pikrōs ).

A few old Latin documents omit this verse which is genuine in Mat 26:75. It may be an insertion here from there, but the evidence for the rejection is too slight. It is the ingressive aorist (eklausen ), he burst into tears. "Bitter"is a common expression for tears in all languages and in all hearts.

Robertson: Luk 22:63 - That held That held ( hoi sunechontes ). See note on Luk 8:45; and the note on Luk 19:43 for this verb sunechō . Here alone in the N.T. for holding a prisone...

That held ( hoi sunechontes ).

See note on Luk 8:45; and the note on Luk 19:43 for this verb sunechō . Here alone in the N.T. for holding a prisoner (holding together). The servants or soldiers, not the Sanhedrin.

Robertson: Luk 22:63 - Mocked Mocked ( enepaizon ). Imperfect active, were mocking, inchoative, began to mock, to play like boys.

Mocked ( enepaizon ).

Imperfect active, were mocking, inchoative, began to mock, to play like boys.

Robertson: Luk 22:63 - And beat him And beat him ( derontes ). Present active participle of derō , to flay, tan, or hide. Literally, "beating."

And beat him ( derontes ).

Present active participle of derō , to flay, tan, or hide. Literally, "beating."

Robertson: Luk 22:64 - Blindfolded Blindfolded ( perikalupsantes ). First aorist active participle of perikaluptō , old verb, to put a veil around. In the N.T. only here and Mar 14:6...

Blindfolded ( perikalupsantes ).

First aorist active participle of perikaluptō , old verb, to put a veil around. In the N.T. only here and Mar 14:65. See note on Mark and Mat 26:67. for further discussion.

Robertson: Luk 22:65 - Many other things Many other things ( hetera polla ). These are just samples.

Many other things ( hetera polla ).

These are just samples.

Robertson: Luk 22:66 - As soon as it was day As soon as it was day ( hōs egeneto hēmera ). Mar 15:1 (Mat 27:1) has "morning."

As soon as it was day ( hōs egeneto hēmera ).

Mar 15:1 (Mat 27:1) has "morning."

Robertson: Luk 22:66 - The assembly of the people The assembly of the people ( to presbuterion tou laou ). The technical word for "the eldership"(from presbuteros , an old man or elder) or group of t...

The assembly of the people ( to presbuterion tou laou ).

The technical word for "the eldership"(from presbuteros , an old man or elder) or group of the elders composing the Sanhedrin. The word occurs in the lxx for the Sanhedrin. In the N.T. occurs only here and Act 22:5 of the Sanhedrin. In 1Ti 4:14 Paul uses it of the elders in a church (or churches). The Sanhedrin was composed of the elders and scribes and chief priests (Mar 15:1) and all three groups are at this meeting. Luke’ s language (both chief priests and scribes, te ... kai ) seems to apply the word presbuterion to the whole Sanhedrin. Sadducees (chief priests) and Pharisees (scribes) were nearly equally represented.

Robertson: Luk 22:66 - Into their council Into their council ( eis to sunedrion autōn ). The place of the gathering is not given, but Jesus was led into the council chamber.

Into their council ( eis to sunedrion autōn ).

The place of the gathering is not given, but Jesus was led into the council chamber.

Robertson: Luk 22:67 - If thou art the Christ If thou art the Christ ( Ei su ei ho Christos ). The Messiah, they mean. The condition is the first class, assuming it to be true.

If thou art the Christ ( Ei su ei ho Christos ).

The Messiah, they mean. The condition is the first class, assuming it to be true.

Robertson: Luk 22:67 - If I tell you If I tell you ( Ean humin eipō ). Condition of the third class, undetermined, but with likelihood of being determined. This is the second appearanc...

If I tell you ( Ean humin eipō ).

Condition of the third class, undetermined, but with likelihood of being determined. This is the second appearance of Jesus before the Sanhedrin merely mentioned by Mar 15:1; Mat 27:1 who give in detail the first appearance and trial. Luke merely gives this so-called ratification meeting after daybreak to give the appearance of legality to their vote of condemnation already taken (Mar 14:64; Mat 26:66).

Robertson: Luk 22:67 - Ye will not believe Ye will not believe ( ou mē pisteusēte ). Double negative with the aorist subjunctive, strongest possible negative. So as to Luk 22:68.

Ye will not believe ( ou mē pisteusēte ).

Double negative with the aorist subjunctive, strongest possible negative. So as to Luk 22:68.

Robertson: Luk 22:69 - The Son of man The Son of man ( ho huios tou anthrōpou ). Jesus really answers their demand about "the Messiah"by asserting that he is "the Son of man"and they so...

The Son of man ( ho huios tou anthrōpou ).

Jesus really answers their demand about "the Messiah"by asserting that he is "the Son of man"and they so understand him. He makes claims of equality with God also which they take up.

Robertson: Luk 22:70 - Art thou the Son of God? Art thou the Son of God? ( Su oun ei ho huios tou theou̱ ). Note how these three epithets are used as practical equivalents. They ask about "the Mes...

Art thou the Son of God? ( Su oun ei ho huios tou theou̱ ).

Note how these three epithets are used as practical equivalents. They ask about "the Messiah."Jesus affirms that he is the Son of Man and will sit at the right hand of the power of God. They take this to be a claim to be the Son of God (both humanity and deity). Jesus accepts the challenge and admits that he claims to be all three (Messiah, the Son of man, the Son of God).

Robertson: Luk 22:70 - Ye say Ye say ( Humeis legete ). Just a Greek idiom for "Yes"(compare "I am"in Mar 14:62 with "Thou has said"in Mat 26:64).

Ye say ( Humeis legete ).

Just a Greek idiom for "Yes"(compare "I am"in Mar 14:62 with "Thou has said"in Mat 26:64).

Robertson: Luk 22:71 - For we ourselves have heard For we ourselves have heard ( autoi gar ēkousamen ). They were right if Jesus is not what he claimed to be. They were eternally wrong for he is the...

For we ourselves have heard ( autoi gar ēkousamen ).

They were right if Jesus is not what he claimed to be. They were eternally wrong for he is the Christ, the Son of man, the Son of God. They made their choice and must face Christ as Judge.

Vincent: Luk 22:1 - Feast Feast ( ἑορτὴ ) Properly festival. See on Mar 14:1.

Feast ( ἑορτὴ )

Properly festival. See on Mar 14:1.

Vincent: Luk 22:1 - Drew nigh Drew nigh Imperfect: " was drawing nigh."

Drew nigh

Imperfect: " was drawing nigh."

Vincent: Luk 22:2 - Sought Sought Imperfect, were seeking, contemporaneously with the approach of the feast.

Sought

Imperfect, were seeking, contemporaneously with the approach of the feast.

Vincent: Luk 22:2 - Kill Kill ( ἀνέλωσιν ) Lit., to take up and carry off, and so to make way with.

Kill ( ἀνέλωσιν )

Lit., to take up and carry off, and so to make way with.

Vincent: Luk 22:3 - Satan Satan See on Luk 13:16.

Satan

See on Luk 13:16.

Vincent: Luk 22:3 - Iscariot Iscariot See on Mat 10:5.

Iscariot

See on Mat 10:5.

Vincent: Luk 22:4 - Captains Captains ( στρατηγοῖς ) The leaders of the temple-guards Compare Act 4:1.

Captains ( στρατηγοῖς )

The leaders of the temple-guards Compare Act 4:1.

Vincent: Luk 22:6 - Promised Promised ( ἐξωμολόγησεν ) See on Mat 3:6; and Mat 11:25. The idea is that of an open and fair consent or pledge.

Promised ( ἐξωμολόγησεν )

See on Mat 3:6; and Mat 11:25. The idea is that of an open and fair consent or pledge.

Vincent: Luk 22:10 - A man - pitcher A man - pitcher See on Mar 14:13.

A man - pitcher

See on Mar 14:13.

Vincent: Luk 22:11 - Guest-chamber Guest-chamber See on Mar 14:14.

Guest-chamber

See on Mar 14:14.

Vincent: Luk 22:12 - And he And he ( κἀκεῖνος ) See on Mar 14:15.

And he ( κἀκεῖνος )

See on Mar 14:15.

Vincent: Luk 22:12 - Furnished Furnished See on Mar 14:15. Wyc., strewed.

Furnished

See on Mar 14:15. Wyc., strewed.

Vincent: Luk 22:14 - The apostles The apostles Both Matthew and Mark have the twelve.

The apostles

Both Matthew and Mark have the twelve.

Vincent: Luk 22:15 - With desire I have desired With desire I have desired Expressing intense desire. Compare Joh 3:29, rejoiceth with joy; Act 4:17, threaten with threatening.

With desire I have desired

Expressing intense desire. Compare Joh 3:29, rejoiceth with joy; Act 4:17, threaten with threatening.

Vincent: Luk 22:19 - Bread Bread ( ἄρτον ) Better, a loaf .

Bread ( ἄρτον )

Better, a loaf .

Vincent: Luk 22:20 - The cup The cup See on Mar 14:23.

The cup

See on Mar 14:23.

Vincent: Luk 22:20 - Testament - shed Testament ( διαθήκη ) - shed See on Mat 26:28.

Testament ( διαθήκη ) - shed

See on Mat 26:28.

Vincent: Luk 22:21 - Betrayeth Betrayeth ( παραδιδόντος ) The present participle: is now engaged in betraying.

Betrayeth ( παραδιδόντος )

The present participle: is now engaged in betraying.

Vincent: Luk 22:21 - With me With me " He does not say with you: thus separating the traitor from the rest of the disciples, and showing that now he alone has to do with th...

With me

" He does not say with you: thus separating the traitor from the rest of the disciples, and showing that now he alone has to do with that wretch, as with an enemy" (Bengel).

Vincent: Luk 22:24 - A strife A strife ( φιλονεικία ) Properly, " an eager contention." Only here in New Testament.

A strife ( φιλονεικία )

Properly, " an eager contention." Only here in New Testament.

Vincent: Luk 22:24 - Greatest Greatest Strictly, greater.

Greatest

Strictly, greater.

Vincent: Luk 22:24 - A strife A strife ( φιλονεικία ) Properly, " an eager contention." Only here in New Testament.

A strife ( φιλονεικία )

Properly, " an eager contention." Only here in New Testament.

Vincent: Luk 22:24 - Greatest Greatest Strictly, greater.

Greatest

Strictly, greater.

Vincent: Luk 22:26 - Doth serve Doth serve See on minister, Mat 20:26.

Doth serve

See on minister, Mat 20:26.

Vincent: Luk 22:26 - Doth serve Doth serve See on minister, Mat 20:26.

Doth serve

See on minister, Mat 20:26.

Vincent: Luk 22:28 - Continued Continued ( διαμεμενηκότες ) Lit., " have remained through " (διά ) .

Continued ( διαμεμενηκότες )

Lit., " have remained through " (διά ) .

Vincent: Luk 22:28 - Continued Continued ( διαμεμενηκότες ) Lit., " have remained through " (διά ) .

Continued ( διαμεμενηκότες )

Lit., " have remained through " (διά ) .

Vincent: Luk 22:29 - I appoint I appoint ( διατίθεμαι ) Implying allotment: assigning in the course of distribution (διά ). Wyc., dispose. Luke is especi...

I appoint ( διατίθεμαι )

Implying allotment: assigning in the course of distribution (διά ). Wyc., dispose. Luke is especially fond of compounds with διά.

Vincent: Luk 22:29 - I appoint I appoint ( διατίθεμαι ) Implying allotment: assigning in the course of distribution (διά ). Wyc., dispose. Luke is especi...

I appoint ( διατίθεμαι )

Implying allotment: assigning in the course of distribution (διά ). Wyc., dispose. Luke is especially fond of compounds with διά.

Vincent: Luk 22:31 - Hath desired Hath desired ( ἐξῃτήσατο ) Only here in New Testament. It sometimes means to obtain by asking, or to beg off . So Xenophon, " A...

Hath desired ( ἐξῃτήσατο )

Only here in New Testament. It sometimes means to obtain by asking, or to beg off . So Xenophon, " Anabasis," i., 1, 3. The mother of Cyrus, who is charged with an attempt to kill his brother, begged him off (ἐξαιτησαμένη ) . Rev., in margin, obtained you by asking. The result proved that Satan had obtained him for the time.

Vincent: Luk 22:31 - Sift Sift ( σινιάσαι ) Only here in New Testament.

Sift ( σινιάσαι )

Only here in New Testament.

Vincent: Luk 22:31 - Wheat Wheat ( σῖτον ) A general term, grain.

Wheat ( σῖτον )

A general term, grain.

Vincent: Luk 22:32 - Prayed Prayed ( ἐδεήθην ) See on prayers , Luk 5:33.

Prayed ( ἐδεήθην )

See on prayers , Luk 5:33.

Vincent: Luk 22:32 - Art converted Art converted ( ἐπιστρέψας ) Converted is simply the Latinized rendering of the word to turn round ( convertere ). Rev. renders t...

Art converted ( ἐπιστρέψας )

Converted is simply the Latinized rendering of the word to turn round ( convertere ). Rev. renders the aorist participle, denoting a definite act, by once : " when once thou hast turned again. "

Vincent: Luk 22:32 - Strengthen Strengthen ( στήρισον ) See on Luk 16:25, and 1Pe 5:10. Rev., stablish, which is much better. Strengthen may denote only a tempora...

Strengthen ( στήρισον )

See on Luk 16:25, and 1Pe 5:10. Rev., stablish, which is much better. Strengthen may denote only a temporary effect. The word implies fixedness.

Vincent: Luk 22:34 - Peter Peter The only instance of Christ's directly addressing him as Peter. He refers to him by that name, Mar 16:7.

Peter

The only instance of Christ's directly addressing him as Peter. He refers to him by that name, Mar 16:7.

Vincent: Luk 22:34 - The cock The cock See on Mat 26:34

The cock

See on Mat 26:34

Vincent: Luk 22:34 - Deny Deny See on Mar 14:30.

Deny

See on Mar 14:30.

Vincent: Luk 22:36 - He that hath no sword He that hath no sword, etc But sword is not governed by hath . It is too far off in the sentence. The meaning is, he that hath not purse or sc...

He that hath no sword, etc

But sword is not governed by hath . It is too far off in the sentence. The meaning is, he that hath not purse or scrip (and is therefore penniless), let him sell his garment and buy a sword. So Wyc.

Vincent: Luk 22:37 - Have an end Have an end ( τέλος ἔχει ) The phrase is synonymous with be accomplished (τελεσθῆναι , Rev., fulfilled ) . In cla...

Have an end ( τέλος ἔχει )

The phrase is synonymous with be accomplished (τελεσθῆναι , Rev., fulfilled ) . In classical Greek this latter word is often used of the fulfilment of an oracle: also of things which are settled beyond controversy. The two expressions here give the two meanings. The prophecy is fulfilled; the things concerning me are finally settled.

Vincent: Luk 22:40 - The place The place See on Gethsemane, Mat 26:36.

The place

See on Gethsemane, Mat 26:36.

Vincent: Luk 22:41 - Was withdrawn Was withdrawn ( ἀπεσπάσθη ) The Vulgate has avulsus est , " he was torn away," as by an inward urgency. Godet adopts this view, ...

Was withdrawn ( ἀπεσπάσθη )

The Vulgate has avulsus est , " he was torn away," as by an inward urgency. Godet adopts this view, and so, apparently, Wyc., he was taken away. Meyer inclines to it; De Wette decidedly rejects it. Compare Act 21:1.

Vincent: Luk 22:41 - Prayed Prayed Imperfect, began to pray .

Prayed

Imperfect, began to pray .

Vincent: Luk 22:43 - There appeared There appeared ( ὤφθη ) The word most commonly used in the New Testament of seeing visions. See Mat 17:3; Mar 9:4; Luk 1:11; Luk 22:43; A...

There appeared ( ὤφθη )

The word most commonly used in the New Testament of seeing visions. See Mat 17:3; Mar 9:4; Luk 1:11; Luk 22:43; Act 2:17; Act 7:35. The kindred noun ὀπτασία , wherever it occurs in the New Testament, means a vision. See Luk 1:2; Luk 24:23, etc.

Vincent: Luk 22:43 - Strengthening Strengthening ( ἐνισχύων ) Only here and Act 9:19. See on was not able , Luk 14:30; and cannot, Luk 16:3. Commonly intransitive; ...

Strengthening ( ἐνισχύων )

Only here and Act 9:19. See on was not able , Luk 14:30; and cannot, Luk 16:3. Commonly intransitive; to prevail in or among . Used transitively only by Hippocrates and Luke.

Vincent: Luk 22:44 - Being in an agony Being in an agony ( γενόμενος ἐν ἀγωνίᾳ ) There is in the aorist participle a suggestion of a growing intensity in t...

Being in an agony ( γενόμενος ἐν ἀγωνίᾳ )

There is in the aorist participle a suggestion of a growing intensity in the struggle, which is not conveyed by the simple being. Literally, though very awkwardly, it is, having become i n an agony : having progressed from the first prayer ( began to pray, Luk 22:41) into an intense struggle of prayer and sorrow. Wycliffe's rendering hints at this: and he, made in agony, prayed. Agony occurs only here. It is used by medical writers, and the fact of a sweat accompanying an agony is also mentioned by them.

Vincent: Luk 22:44 - More earnestly More earnestly ( ἐκτενέστερον ) See on fervently, 1Pe 1:22.

More earnestly ( ἐκτενέστερον )

See on fervently, 1Pe 1:22.

Vincent: Luk 22:44 - Was Was ( ἐγένετο ) More correctly, as Rev., became. See on γενόμενος , being, above.

Was ( ἐγένετο )

More correctly, as Rev., became. See on γενόμενος , being, above.

Vincent: Luk 22:44 - Great drops Great drops ( θρόμβοι ) Only here in New Testament: gouts or clots . Very common in medical language. Aristotle mentions a bloody swe...

Great drops ( θρόμβοι )

Only here in New Testament: gouts or clots . Very common in medical language. Aristotle mentions a bloody sweat arising from the blood being in poor condition; and Theophrastus mentions a physician who compared a species of sweat to blood.

Vincent: Luk 22:45 - For sorrow For sorrow The mention of the cause of the drowsiness is characteristic.

For sorrow

The mention of the cause of the drowsiness is characteristic.

Vincent: Luk 22:47 - Multitude - one of the twelve Multitude - one of the twelve See on Mat 26:47

Multitude - one of the twelve

See on Mat 26:47

Vincent: Luk 22:47 - To kiss To kiss See on Mat 26:49.

To kiss

See on Mat 26:49.

Vincent: Luk 22:50 - The servant The servant See on Mat 26:51.

The servant

See on Mat 26:51.

Vincent: Luk 22:50 - His right ear His right ear Lit., his ear, the right one. See on Mat 26:51; and compare Mar 14:47. Both Matthew and Mark use diminutives.

His right ear

Lit., his ear, the right one. See on Mat 26:51; and compare Mar 14:47. Both Matthew and Mark use diminutives.

Vincent: Luk 22:51 - Suffer ye thus far Suffer ye thus far This is variously interpreted. I think the text requires that the words should be addressed to the disciples, and taken as the...

Suffer ye thus far

This is variously interpreted. I think the text requires that the words should be addressed to the disciples, and taken as the answer to the question, shall we smite, etc. The meaning then is, permit them to go so far as to seize me . The expression thus corresponds with Mat 26:52,

Vincent: Luk 22:51 - Ear Ear ( ὠτίου ) This time Luke uses the diminutive. Wyc., little ear.

Ear ( ὠτίου )

This time Luke uses the diminutive. Wyc., little ear.

Vincent: Luk 22:51 - Healed Healed Only Luke records the healing.

Healed

Only Luke records the healing.

Vincent: Luk 22:52 - Thief Thief ( λῃστὴν ) See on Mat 26:55; and Luk 10:30; Mar 11:17.

Thief ( λῃστὴν )

See on Mat 26:55; and Luk 10:30; Mar 11:17.

Vincent: Luk 22:55 - Kindled Kindled ( περιαψάντων ) Lit., kindled all round (περί ): set in full blaze.

Kindled ( περιαψάντων )

Lit., kindled all round (περί ): set in full blaze.

Vincent: Luk 22:55 - Hall Hall Or court. See on Mar 14:54.

Hall

Or court. See on Mar 14:54.

Vincent: Luk 22:56 - By the fire By the fire ( πρὸς τὸ φῶς ) See on Mar 14:54.

By the fire ( πρὸς τὸ φῶς )

See on Mar 14:54.

Vincent: Luk 22:63 - Smote Smote ( δέροντες ) Originally to flay ; thence to cudgel . Compare our vulgarism, to tan or hide.

Smote ( δέροντες )

Originally to flay ; thence to cudgel . Compare our vulgarism, to tan or hide.

Vincent: Luk 22:66 - The elders The elders ( πρεσβυτέριον ) More correctly, the assembly of the elders. So Rev.

The elders ( πρεσβυτέριον )

More correctly, the assembly of the elders. So Rev.

Wesley: Luk 22:1 - -- Mat 26:1; Mar 14:1.

Wesley: Luk 22:3 - Then entered Satan Who is never wanting to assist those whose heart is bent upon mischief.

Who is never wanting to assist those whose heart is bent upon mischief.

Wesley: Luk 22:4 - Captains Called captains of the temple, Luk 22:52. They were Jewish officers, who presided over the guards which kept watch every night in the temple.

Called captains of the temple, Luk 22:52. They were Jewish officers, who presided over the guards which kept watch every night in the temple.

Wesley: Luk 22:7 - -- Mat 26:17; Mar 14:12.

Wesley: Luk 22:14 - -- Mat 26:20; Mar 14:17.

Wesley: Luk 22:15 - With desire have I desired That is, I have earnestly desired it. He desired it, both for the sake of his disciples, to whom he desired to manifest himself farther, at this solem...

That is, I have earnestly desired it. He desired it, both for the sake of his disciples, to whom he desired to manifest himself farther, at this solemn parting: and for the sake of his whole Church, that he might institute the grand memorial of his death.

Wesley: Luk 22:16 - For I will not eat thereof any more That is, it will be the last I shall eat with you before I die. The kingdom of God did not properly commence till his resurrection. Then was fulfilled...

That is, it will be the last I shall eat with you before I die. The kingdom of God did not properly commence till his resurrection. Then was fulfilled what was typified by the passover.

Wesley: Luk 22:17 - And he took the cup That cup which used to be brought at the beginning of the paschal solemnity, and said, Take this and divide it among yourselves; for I will not drink ...

That cup which used to be brought at the beginning of the paschal solemnity, and said, Take this and divide it among yourselves; for I will not drink - As if he had said, Do not expect me to drink of it: I will drink no more before I die.

Wesley: Luk 22:19 - And he took bread Namely, some time after, when supper was ended, wherein they had eaten the paschal lamb.

Namely, some time after, when supper was ended, wherein they had eaten the paschal lamb.

Wesley: Luk 22:19 - This is my body As he had just now celebrated the paschal supper, which was called the passover, so in like figurative language, he calls this bread his body. And thi...

As he had just now celebrated the paschal supper, which was called the passover, so in like figurative language, he calls this bread his body. And this circumstance of itself was sufficient to prevent any mistake, as if this bread was his real body, any more than the paschal lamb was really the passover.

Wesley: Luk 22:20 - This cup is the New Testament Here is an undeniable figure, whereby the cup is put for the wine in the cup. And this is called, The New Testament in Christ's blood, which could not...

Here is an undeniable figure, whereby the cup is put for the wine in the cup. And this is called, The New Testament in Christ's blood, which could not possibly mean, that it was the New Testament itself, but only the seal of it, and the sign of that blood which was shed to confirm it.

Wesley: Luk 22:21 - The hand of him that betrayeth me is with me on the table It is evident Christ spake these words before he instituted the Lord's Supper: for all the other evangelists mention the sop, immediately after receiv...

It is evident Christ spake these words before he instituted the Lord's Supper: for all the other evangelists mention the sop, immediately after receiving which he went out: Joh 13:30. Nor did he return any more, till he came into the garden to betray his Master. Now this could not be dipped or given, but while the meat was on the table. But this was all removed before that bread and cup were brought.

Wesley: Luk 22:24 - There was also a contention among them It is highly probable, this was the same dispute which is mentioned by St. Matthew and St. Mark: and consequently, though it is related here, it happe...

It is highly probable, this was the same dispute which is mentioned by St. Matthew and St. Mark: and consequently, though it is related here, it happened some time before.

Wesley: Luk 22:25 - -- They that exercise the most arbitrary authority over them, have from their flatterers the vain title of benefactors.

They that exercise the most arbitrary authority over them, have from their flatterers the vain title of benefactors.

Wesley: Luk 22:26 - -- But ye are to be benefactors to mankind, not by governing, but by serving.

But ye are to be benefactors to mankind, not by governing, but by serving.

Wesley: Luk 22:27 - For This he proves by his own example.

This he proves by his own example.

Wesley: Luk 22:27 - I am in the midst of you Just now: see with your eyes. I take no state upon me, but sit in the midst, on a level with the lowest of you.

Just now: see with your eyes. I take no state upon me, but sit in the midst, on a level with the lowest of you.

Wesley: Luk 22:28 - Ye have continued with me in my temptations And all his life was nothing else, particularly from his entering on his public ministry.

And all his life was nothing else, particularly from his entering on his public ministry.

Wesley: Luk 22:29 - And I Will preserve you in all your temptations, till ye enter into the kingdom of glory: appoint to you - By these very words. Not a primacy to one, but a ...

Will preserve you in all your temptations, till ye enter into the kingdom of glory: appoint to you - By these very words. Not a primacy to one, but a kingdom to every one: on the same terms: as my Father hath appointed to me - Who have fought and conquered.

Wesley: Luk 22:30 - That ye may eat and drink at my table That is, that ye may enjoy the highest happiness, as guests, not as servants. These expressions seem to be primarily applicable to the twelve apostles...

That is, that ye may enjoy the highest happiness, as guests, not as servants. These expressions seem to be primarily applicable to the twelve apostles, and secondarily, to all Christ's servants and disciples, whose spiritual powers, honours, and delights, are here represented in figurative terms, with respect to their advancement both in the kingdom of grace and of glory.

Wesley: Luk 22:31 - Satan hath desired to have you My apostles, that he might sift you as wheat - Try you to the uttermost.

My apostles, that he might sift you as wheat - Try you to the uttermost.

Wesley: Luk 22:32 - But I have prayed for thee Who wilt be in the greatest danger of all: that thy faith fail not - Altogether: and when thou art returned - From thy flight, strengthen thy brethren...

Who wilt be in the greatest danger of all: that thy faith fail not - Altogether: and when thou art returned - From thy flight, strengthen thy brethren - All that are weak in faith; perhaps scandalized at thy fall.

Wesley: Luk 22:34 - It shall not be the time of cock crowing this day The common time of cock crowing (which is usually about three in the morning) probably did not come till after the cock which Peter heard had crowed t...

The common time of cock crowing (which is usually about three in the morning) probably did not come till after the cock which Peter heard had crowed twice, if not oftener.

Wesley: Luk 22:35 - When I sent you lacked ye any thing - Were ye not borne above all want and danger?

lacked ye any thing - Were ye not borne above all want and danger?

Wesley: Luk 22:36 - But now You will be quite in another situation. You will want every thing. He that hath no sword, let him sell his garment and buy one - It is plain, this is ...

You will be quite in another situation. You will want every thing. He that hath no sword, let him sell his garment and buy one - It is plain, this is not to be taken literally. It only means, This will be a time of extreme danger.

Wesley: Luk 22:37 - The things which are written concerning me have an end Are now drawing to a period; are upon the point of being accomplished. Isa 53:12.

Are now drawing to a period; are upon the point of being accomplished. Isa 53:12.

Wesley: Luk 22:38 - Here are two swords Many of Galilee carried them when they travelled, to defend themselves against robbers and assassins, who much infested their roads.

Many of Galilee carried them when they travelled, to defend themselves against robbers and assassins, who much infested their roads.

Wesley: Luk 22:38 - But did the apostles need to seek such defence? And he said; It is enough I did not mean literally, that every one of you must have a sword.

I did not mean literally, that every one of you must have a sword.

Wesley: Luk 22:39 - -- Mat 26:30.

Wesley: Luk 22:40 - The place The garden of Gethsemane.

The garden of Gethsemane.

Wesley: Luk 22:43 - Strengthening him Lest his body should sink and die before the time.

Lest his body should sink and die before the time.

Wesley: Luk 22:44 - And being in an agony Probably just now grappling with the powers of darkness: feeling the weight of the wrath of God, and at the same time surrounded with a mighty host of...

Probably just now grappling with the powers of darkness: feeling the weight of the wrath of God, and at the same time surrounded with a mighty host of devils, who exercised all their force and malice to persecute and distract his wounded spirit.

Wesley: Luk 22:44 - He prayed more earnestly Even with stronger cries and tars: and his sweat - As cold as the weather was, was as it were great drops of blood - Which, by the vehement distress o...

Even with stronger cries and tars: and his sweat - As cold as the weather was, was as it were great drops of blood - Which, by the vehement distress of his soul, were forced out of the pores, in so great a quantity as afterward united in large, thick, grumous drops, and even fell to the ground.

Wesley: Luk 22:48 - Betrayest thou the Son of man He whom thou knowest to be the Son of man, the Christ?

He whom thou knowest to be the Son of man, the Christ?

Wesley: Luk 22:49 - Seeing what would follow That they were just going to seize him. Mat 26:51; Mar 14:47.

That they were just going to seize him. Mat 26:51; Mar 14:47.

Wesley: Luk 22:51 - -- Suffer me at least to have my hands at liberty thus far, while I do one more act of mercy.

Suffer me at least to have my hands at liberty thus far, while I do one more act of mercy.

Wesley: Luk 22:52 - Jesus said to the chief priests, and captains, and the elders who were come And all these came of their own accord: the soldiers and servants were sent.

And all these came of their own accord: the soldiers and servants were sent.

Wesley: Luk 22:53 - This is your hour Before which ye could not take me: and the power of darkness - The time when Satan has power.

Before which ye could not take me: and the power of darkness - The time when Satan has power.

Wesley: Luk 22:54 - -- Mat 26:57; Mar 14:53; Joh 18:12.

Wesley: Luk 22:58 - Another man saw him and said Observe here, in order to reconcile the four evangelists, that divers persons concurred in charging Peter with belonging to Christ. The maid that led ...

Observe here, in order to reconcile the four evangelists, that divers persons concurred in charging Peter with belonging to Christ. The maid that led him in, afterward seeing him at the fire, first put the question to him, and then positively affirmed, that he was with Christ. Another maid accused him to the standers by, and gave occasion to the man here mentioned, to renew the charge against him, which caused the second denial. Others of the company took notice of his being a Galilean, and were seconded by the kinsman of Malchus, who affirmed he had seen him in the garden. And this drew on the third denial.

Wesley: Luk 22:59 - And about one hour after So he did not recollect himself in all that time.

So he did not recollect himself in all that time.

Wesley: Luk 22:63 - -- Mat 26:67; Mar 14:65.

Wesley: Luk 22:64 - And having blindfolded him, they struck him on the face This is placed by St. Matthew and Mark, after the council's condemning him. Probably he was abused in the same manner, both before and after his conde...

This is placed by St. Matthew and Mark, after the council's condemning him. Probably he was abused in the same manner, both before and after his condemnation.

Wesley: Luk 22:65 - Many other things blasphemously spake they against him The expression is remarkable. They charged him with blasphemy, because he said he was the Son of God: but the evangelist fixes that charge on them, be...

The expression is remarkable. They charged him with blasphemy, because he said he was the Son of God: but the evangelist fixes that charge on them, because he really was so.

Wesley: Luk 22:66 - -- Mat 26:63; Mar 14:61.

Wesley: Luk 22:70 - They all said, Art thou then the Son of God? Both these, the Son of God, and the Son of man, were known titles of the Messiah; the one taken from his Divine, and the other from his human nature.

Both these, the Son of God, and the Son of man, were known titles of the Messiah; the one taken from his Divine, and the other from his human nature.

JFB: Luk 22:3 - Then entered Satan, &c. But not yet in the full sense. The awful stages of it were these: (1) Covetousness being his master--passion, the Lord let it reveal itself and gather...

But not yet in the full sense. The awful stages of it were these: (1) Covetousness being his master--passion, the Lord let it reveal itself and gather strength by entrusting him with "the bag" (Joh 12:6), as treasurer to Himself and the Twelve. (2) In the discharge of that most sacred trust he became "a thief," appropriating its contents from time to time to his own use. Satan, seeing this door into his heart standing wide open, determines to enter by it, but cautiously (2Co 2:11); first merely "putting it into his heart to betray Him" (Joh 13:2), suggesting the thought to him that by this means he might enrich himself. (3) This thought was probably converted into a settled purpose by what took place in Simon's house at Bethany. (See Mat 26:6, and see on Joh 12:4-8.) (4) Starting back, perhaps, or mercifully held back, for some time, the determination to carry it into immediate effect was not consummated till, sitting at the paschal supper, "Satan entered into him" (see on Joh 13:27), and conscience, effectually stifled, only rose again to be his tormentor. What lessons in all this for every one (Eph 4:27; Jam 4:7; 1Pe 5:8-9)!

JFB: Luk 22:5 - money "thirty pieces of silver" (Mat 26:15); thirty shekels, the fine payable for man- or maid-servant accidentally killed (Exo 21:32), and equal to between...

"thirty pieces of silver" (Mat 26:15); thirty shekels, the fine payable for man- or maid-servant accidentally killed (Exo 21:32), and equal to between four and five pounds of our money--"a goodly price that I was priced at of them" (Zec 11:13). (See on Joh 19:16.)

JFB: Luk 22:6 - in the absence, &c. (See Mat 26:5).

(See Mat 26:5).

JFB: Luk 22:7 - the day of unleavened bread Strictly the fifteenth Nisan (part of our March and April) after the paschal lamb was killed; but here, the fourteenth (Thursday). Into the difficult ...

Strictly the fifteenth Nisan (part of our March and April) after the paschal lamb was killed; but here, the fourteenth (Thursday). Into the difficult questions raised on this we cannot here enter.

JFB: Luk 22:10-13 - when ye are entered the city He Himself probably stayed at Bethany during the day.

He Himself probably stayed at Bethany during the day.

JFB: Luk 22:10-13 - there shall a man, &c. (See on Luk 19:29-32).

(See on Luk 19:29-32).

JFB: Luk 22:14-18 - the hour About six P.M. Between three and this hour the lamb was killed (Exo 12:6, Margin)

About six P.M. Between three and this hour the lamb was killed (Exo 12:6, Margin)

JFB: Luk 22:15 - With desire . . . desired "earnestly have I longed" (as Gen 31:30, "sore longedst"). Why? It was to be His last "before He suffered"--and so became "Christ our Passover sacrifi...

"earnestly have I longed" (as Gen 31:30, "sore longedst"). Why? It was to be His last "before He suffered"--and so became "Christ our Passover sacrificed for us" (1Co 5:7), when it was "fulfilled in the Kingdom of God," the typical ordinance thenceforth disappearing.

JFB: Luk 22:17 - took the cup The first of several partaken of in this service.

The first of several partaken of in this service.

JFB: Luk 22:17 - divide it among, &c. That is, It is to be your last as well as Mine, "until the Kingdom of God come," or as it is beautifully given in Mat 26:29, "until that day when I sh...

That is, It is to be your last as well as Mine, "until the Kingdom of God come," or as it is beautifully given in Mat 26:29, "until that day when I shall drink it new with you in my Father's kingdom." It was the point of transition between two economies and their two great festivals, the one about to close for ever, the other immediately to open and run its majestic career until from earth it be transferred to heaven.

JFB: Luk 22:21-22 - -- (See on Joh 13:21, &c.).

(See on Joh 13:21, &c.).

JFB: Luk 22:24-30 - there was Or "had been," referring probably to some symptoms of the former strife which had reappeared, perhaps on seeing the whole paschal arrangements committ...

Or "had been," referring probably to some symptoms of the former strife which had reappeared, perhaps on seeing the whole paschal arrangements committed to two of the Twelve. (See on Mar 10:42-45.)

JFB: Luk 22:25 - benefactors A title which the vanity of princes eagerly coveted.

A title which the vanity of princes eagerly coveted.

JFB: Luk 22:26 - But ye . . . not Of how little avail has this condemnation of "lordship" and vain titles been against the vanity of Christian ecclesiastics?

Of how little avail has this condemnation of "lordship" and vain titles been against the vanity of Christian ecclesiastics?

JFB: Luk 22:28 - continued, &c. Affecting evidence of Christ's tender susceptibility to human sympathy and support! (See on Joh 6:66-67; see Joh 16:32.)

Affecting evidence of Christ's tender susceptibility to human sympathy and support! (See on Joh 6:66-67; see Joh 16:32.)

JFB: Luk 22:29 - I appoint, &c. Who is this that dispenses kingdoms, nay, the Kingdom of kingdoms, within an hour or two of His apprehension, and less than a day of His shameful deat...

Who is this that dispenses kingdoms, nay, the Kingdom of kingdoms, within an hour or two of His apprehension, and less than a day of His shameful death? These sublime contrasts, however, perpetually meet and entrance us in this matchless history.

JFB: Luk 22:30 - eat and drink, &c. (See Luk 22:16 and see on Luk 18:28, &c.).

(See Luk 22:16 and see on Luk 18:28, &c.).

JFB: Luk 22:31-34 - Simon, Simon (See on Luk 10:41).

(See on Luk 10:41).

JFB: Luk 22:31-34 - desired to have Rather, "hath obtained you," properly "asked and obtained"; alluding to Job (Job 1:6-12; Job 2:1-6), whom he solicited and obtained that he might sift...

Rather, "hath obtained you," properly "asked and obtained"; alluding to Job (Job 1:6-12; Job 2:1-6), whom he solicited and obtained that he might sift him as wheat, insinuating as "the accuser of the brethren" (Rev 12:10), that he would find chaff enough in his religion, if indeed there was any wheat at all.

JFB: Luk 22:31-34 - you Not Peter only, but them all.

Not Peter only, but them all.

JFB: Luk 22:32 - But I have prayed Have been doing it already.

Have been doing it already.

JFB: Luk 22:32 - for thee As most in danger. (See on Luk 22:61-62.)

As most in danger. (See on Luk 22:61-62.)

JFB: Luk 22:32 - fail not That is, entirely; for partially it did fail.

That is, entirely; for partially it did fail.

JFB: Luk 22:32 - converted Brought back afresh as a penitent disciple.

Brought back afresh as a penitent disciple.

JFB: Luk 22:32 - strengthen, &c. That is, make use of thy bitter experience for the fortifying of thy tempted brethren.

That is, make use of thy bitter experience for the fortifying of thy tempted brethren.

JFB: Luk 22:33 - I am ready, &c. Honest-hearted, warmly-attached disciple, thinking thy present feelings immovable as a rock, thou shalt find them in the hour of temptation unstable a...

Honest-hearted, warmly-attached disciple, thinking thy present feelings immovable as a rock, thou shalt find them in the hour of temptation unstable as water: "I have been praying for thee," therefore thy faith shall not perish; but thinking this superfluous, thou shalt find that "he that trusteth in his own heart is a fool" (Pro 28:26).

JFB: Luk 22:34 - cock . . . crow "twice" (Mar 14:30).

"twice" (Mar 14:30).

JFB: Luk 22:35-38 - But now That you are going forth not as before on a temporary mission, provided for without purse or scrip, but into scenes of continued and severe trial, you...

That you are going forth not as before on a temporary mission, provided for without purse or scrip, but into scenes of continued and severe trial, your methods must be different; for purse and scrip will now be needed for support, and the usual means of defense.

JFB: Luk 22:37 - the things concerning me Decreed and written.

Decreed and written.

JFB: Luk 22:37 - have an end Are rapidly drawing to a close.

Are rapidly drawing to a close.

JFB: Luk 22:38 - two swords . . . enough They thinking He referred to present defense, while His answer showed He meant something else.

They thinking He referred to present defense, while His answer showed He meant something else.

JFB: Luk 22:39 - as . . . wont (See Joh 18:2).

(See Joh 18:2).

JFB: Luk 22:40 - the place The Garden of Gethsemane, on the west or city side of the mount. Comparing all the accounts of this mysterious scene, the facts appear to be these: (1...

The Garden of Gethsemane, on the west or city side of the mount. Comparing all the accounts of this mysterious scene, the facts appear to be these: (1) He bade nine of the Twelve remain "here" while He went and prayed "yonder." (2) He "took the other three, Peter, James, and John, and began to be sore amazed [appalled], sorrowful, and very heavy [oppressed], and said, My soul is exceeding sorrowful even unto death"--"I feel as if nature would sink under this load, as if life were ebbing out, and death coming before its time"--"tarry ye here, and watch with Me"; not, "Witness for Me," but, "Bear Me company." It did Him good, it seems, to have them beside Him. (3) But soon even they were too much for Him: He must be alone. "He was withdrawn from them about a stone's-cast"--though near enough for them to be competent witnesses and kneeled down, uttering that most affecting prayer (Mar 14:36), that if possible "the cup," of His approaching death, "might pass from Him, but if not, His Father's will be done": implying that in itself it was so purely revolting that only its being the Father's will would induce Him to taste it, but that in that view of it He was perfectly prepared to drink it. It is no struggle between a reluctant and a compliant will, but between two views of one event--an abstract and a relative view of it, in the one of which it was revolting, in the other welcome. By signifying how it felt in the one view, He shows His beautiful oneness with ourselves in nature and feeling; by expressing how He regarded it in the other light, He reveals His absolute obediential subjection to His Father. (4) On this, having a momentary relief, for it came upon Him, we imagine, by surges, He returns to the three, and finding them sleeping, He addresses them affectingly, particularly Peter, as in Mar 14:37-38. He then (5) goes back, not now to kneel, but fell on His face on the ground, saying the same words, but with this turn, "If this cup may not pass," &c. (Mat 26:42) --that is, 'Yes, I understand this mysterious silence (Psa 22:1-6); it may not pass; I am to drink it, and I will'--"Thy will be done!" (6) Again, for a moment relieved, He returns and finds them "sleeping for sorrow," warns them as before, but puts a loving construction upon it, separating between the "willing spirit" and the "weak flesh." (7) Once more, returning to His solitary spot, the surges rise higher, beat more tempestuously, and seem ready to overwhelm Him. To fortify Him for this, "there appeared an angel unto Him from heaven strengthening Him"--not to minister light or comfort (He was to have none of that, and they were not needed nor fitted to convey it), but purely to sustain and brace up sinking nature for a yet hotter and fiercer struggle. And now, He is "in an agony, and prays more earnestly"--even Christ's prayer, it seems, admitted of and now demanded such increase--"and His sweat was as it were great drops [literally, 'clots'] of blood falling down to the ground." What was this? Not His proper sacrificial offering, though essential to it. It was just the internal struggle, apparently hushing itself before, but now swelling up again, convulsing His whole inner man, and this so affecting His animal nature that the sweat oozed out from every pore in thick drops of blood, falling to the ground. It was just shuddering nature and indomitable will struggling together. But again the cry, If it must be, Thy will be done, issues from His lips, and all is over. "The bitterness of death is past." He has anticipated and rehearsed His final conflict, and won the victory--now on the theater of an invincible will, as then on the arena of the Cross. "I will suffer," is the grand result of Gethsemane: "It is finished" is the shout that bursts from the Cross. The Will without the Deed had been all in vain; but His work was consummated when He carried the now manifested Will into the palpable Deed, "by the which WILL we are sanctified THROUGH THE OFFERING OF THE BODY OF JESUS CHRIST ONCE FOR ALL" (Heb 10:10). (8) At the close of the whole scene, finding them still sleeping (worn out with continued sorrow and racking anxiety), He bids them, with an irony of deep emotion, "sleep on now and take their rest, the hour is come, the Son of man is betrayed into the hands of sinners, rise, let us be going, the traitor is at hand." And while He spoke, Judas approached with his armed band. Thus they proved "miserable comforters," broken reeds; and thus in His whole work He was alone, and "of the people there was none with Him."

JFB: Luk 22:61 - And the Lord turned, and looked upon Peter (Also see on Mar 14:72.)

(Also see on Mar 14:72.)

JFB: Luk 22:62 - And Peter went out, and wept bitterly (Also see on Mar 14:72.)

(Also see on Mar 14:72.)

Clarke: Luk 22:1 - The feast of unleavened bread, etc. The feast of unleavened bread, etc. - See this largely explained, Exo 23:14 (note); Leviticus 23:2-40 (note), and on Mat 26:2 (note).

The feast of unleavened bread, etc. - See this largely explained, Exo 23:14 (note); Leviticus 23:2-40 (note), and on Mat 26:2 (note).

Clarke: Luk 22:2 - They feared the people They feared the people - The great mass of the people seem to have been convinced that Christ was at least a prophet sent from God; and it is likely...

They feared the people - The great mass of the people seem to have been convinced that Christ was at least a prophet sent from God; and it is likely they kept steady in their attachment to him. The multitude, who are represented as clamouring for his blood at the crucifixion, appear to have been a mere mob, formed out of the creatures of the chief priests and Pharisees.

Clarke: Luk 22:3 - Then entered Satan into Judas Then entered Satan into Judas - The devil filled the heart of Judas with avarice; and that infamous passion led him to commit the crime here specifi...

Then entered Satan into Judas - The devil filled the heart of Judas with avarice; and that infamous passion led him to commit the crime here specified. This at once accounts for the whole of this most unprincipled and unnatural transaction. None but a devil, or he who is possessed by one, could have been guilty of it: - let the living lay this to heart. A minister of the Gospel, who is a lover of money, is constantly betraying the interests of Christ. He cannot serve two masters; and while his heart is possessed with the love of self, the love of God and zeal for perishing souls cannot dwell in him. What Satan could not do by the envy and malice of the high priests and Pharisees, he effects by Judas, a false and fallen minister of the Gospel of God. None are so dangerous to the interests of Christianity as persons of this stamp.

Clarke: Luk 22:4 - And captains And captains - Among the priests who were in waiting at the temple, some were appointed φυλακες, for a guard to the temple; and over these w...

And captains - Among the priests who were in waiting at the temple, some were appointed φυλακες, for a guard to the temple; and over these were Ϛρατηγοι commanding officers: both sorts are mentioned by Josephus, War, b. vi. c. 5. s. 3. Bp. Pearce, See another sense of captains, in the note on Mat 27:65 (note). Dr. Lightfoot supposes these to have been the captains over the watches; for in three places the priests kept watch and ward in the temple, viz. in Beth Abtenes, in Beth Nitsots, and in Beth Mokad. The Levites also in twenty-one places more, Middoth, chap. i. Though these watches consisted of several persons in each, there was one set over them, as the captain or head of that watch. He thinks that Matthew, Mat 27:65, refers to one of these: Ye have a watch of your own; let some of them be sent to guard the sepulchre. The captain of the temple, he supposes to have been the chief or head of all these watches; and thus he was captain of the captains. In the same Talmudical tract it is said, The ruler of the mountain of the temple (i.e. captain of the temple) takes his walks through every watch with torches lighted before him: if he found any upon the watch, that was not standing on his feet, he said, Peace be with thee: but if he found him sleeping, he struck him with a stick, and he might also burn his clothes. And when it was said by others, What noise is that in the court? the answer was, It is the noise of a Levite under correction, whose garments they are burning, because he slept upon his watch. This custom casts light on Rev 16:15 : Behold, I come as a thief: blessed is he that watcheth, and keepeth his garments, lest he walk naked, and they see his shame. It is easy to distinguish this captain of the mountain of the temple from the ruler of the temple, or sagan : the former presided over the guards; the latter over the whole service of the temple. We have them both distinguished, Act 4:1 : there is the captain of the temple; and Annas, who was the sagan . See Lightfoot.

Clarke: Luk 22:5 - They - covenanted to give him money They - covenanted to give him money - Matthew says thirty pieces, or staters, of silver, about 4£. 10s. English, the common price of the meanest sl...

They - covenanted to give him money - Matthew says thirty pieces, or staters, of silver, about 4£. 10s. English, the common price of the meanest slave. See the note on Mat 26:15.

Clarke: Luk 22:6 - And he promised And he promised - That is, to do it - εξωμολογησε : or, He accepted the proposal. See Wakefield.

And he promised - That is, to do it - εξωμολογησε : or, He accepted the proposal. See Wakefield.

Clarke: Luk 22:7 - The passover The passover - Πασχα, Luk 22:1, is the name of the festival; το πασχα here is supposed to be the name of that on which they feasted, ...

The passover - Πασχα, Luk 22:1, is the name of the festival; το πασχα here is supposed to be the name of that on which they feasted, viz. the sacrificed paschal lamb. But see the notes on Matthew 26 (note), and especially the observations at the end of that chapter, (Mat 26:75 (note)).

Clarke: Luk 22:8-13 - He sent Peter and John, etc. He sent Peter and John, etc. - See the subject of these verses largely explained on Mat 26:17-19 (note), and Mar 14:13, Mar 14:15 (note).

He sent Peter and John, etc. - See the subject of these verses largely explained on Mat 26:17-19 (note), and Mar 14:13, Mar 14:15 (note).

Clarke: Luk 22:14 - And when the hour was come And when the hour was come - That is, the evening. See Mat 26:20, and Mar 14:17.

And when the hour was come - That is, the evening. See Mat 26:20, and Mar 14:17.

Clarke: Luk 22:15 - With desire I have desired With desire I have desired - A Hebraism for, I have desired most earnestly. Our Lord’ s meaning seems to be, that, having purposed to redeem a ...

With desire I have desired - A Hebraism for, I have desired most earnestly. Our Lord’ s meaning seems to be, that, having purposed to redeem a lost world by his blood, he ardently longed for the time in which he was to offer himself up. Such love did the holy Jesus bear to the human race. This eucharistic passover was celebrated once, by way of anticipation, before the bloody sacrifice of the victim of salvation, and before the deliverance it was appointed to commemorate; as the figurative passover had been likewise once celebrated before the going out of Egypt, and the deliverance of God’ s chosen people. Quesnel.

Clarke: Luk 22:16 - Until it be fulfilled in the kingdom of God Until it be fulfilled in the kingdom of God - That is, until that of which the passover is a type is fulfilled in my death, through which the kingdo...

Until it be fulfilled in the kingdom of God - That is, until that of which the passover is a type is fulfilled in my death, through which the kingdom of God, or of heaven, (See Mat 3:2), shall be established among men.

Clarke: Luk 22:17 - He took the cup He took the cup - This was not the sacramental cup, for that was taken after supper, Luk 22:20, but was the cup which was ordinarily taken before su...

He took the cup - This was not the sacramental cup, for that was taken after supper, Luk 22:20, but was the cup which was ordinarily taken before supper

Clarke: Luk 22:17 - Divide it among yourselves Divide it among yourselves - Pass the cup from one to another; thus the cup which Christ gave to the first person on his right hand continued to be ...

Divide it among yourselves - Pass the cup from one to another; thus the cup which Christ gave to the first person on his right hand continued to be handed from one to another, till it came to the last person on his left.

Clarke: Luk 22:18 - I will not drink of the fruit of the vine I will not drink of the fruit of the vine - That is, before the time of another passover, the Holy Ghost shall descend, the Gospel of the kingdom be...

I will not drink of the fruit of the vine - That is, before the time of another passover, the Holy Ghost shall descend, the Gospel of the kingdom be established, and the sacramental supper shall take place of the paschal lamb; for in a few hours his crucifixion was to take place. See on Mat 26:29 (note).

Clarke: Luk 22:19 - Took bread Took bread - See the nature and design of the Lord’ s Supper explained in the notes on Mat 26:26-29 (note)

Took bread - See the nature and design of the Lord’ s Supper explained in the notes on Mat 26:26-29 (note)

Clarke: Luk 22:19 - This do in remembrance of me This do in remembrance of me - That the Jews, in eating the passover, did it to represent the sufferings of the Messiah, as evident from the tract P...

This do in remembrance of me - That the Jews, in eating the passover, did it to represent the sufferings of the Messiah, as evident from the tract Pesachim, fol. 119, quoted by Schoettgen

Why do we call this the great hallel? (i.e. the hymn composed of several psalms, which they sung after the paschal supper). Ans. Because in it these five things are contained

1.    The exodus from Egypt

2.    The dividing of the Red Sea

3.    The promulgation of the law

4.    The resurrection of the dead. And

5.    The sufferings of the Messiah

The first is referred to, Psa 114:1, When Israel went out of Egypt, etc

The second in Psa 114:3, The sea saw it and fled

The third in Psa 114:4, The mountains skipped like rams, etc

The fourth in Psa 116:9, I will walk before the Lord in the land of the living

The fifth in Psa 115:1, Not unto us, O Lord, not unto us, but unto thy name give glory; for thy mercy and thy truth’ s sake. See the note on Mat 26:30.

Clarke: Luk 22:20 - This cup is the new testament in my blood This cup is the new testament in my blood - Perhaps it might be better to paraphrase the passage thus: This cup which is poured out for you, signifi...

This cup is the new testament in my blood - Perhaps it might be better to paraphrase the passage thus: This cup which is poured out for you, signifies the blood of the new covenant, which is shortly to be ratified in (or by) the shedding of my blood. Or, This cup is the new covenant, poured out for you with my blood: - that is, the paschal sacrifice and my sacrifice happen together. But see Kypke

It does not appear that our Lord handed either the bread or the cup to each person; he gave it to him who was next to him, and, by handing it from one to another, they shared it among themselves, Luk 22:17. In this respect the present mode of administering the Lord’ s Supper is not strictly according to the original institution.

Clarke: Luk 22:21 - The hand of him that betrayeth me, etc. The hand of him that betrayeth me, etc. - What can be desired more, says Dr. Lightfoot, as a demonstration that Judas was present at the eucharist? ...

The hand of him that betrayeth me, etc. - What can be desired more, says Dr. Lightfoot, as a demonstration that Judas was present at the eucharist? And, whereas the contrary is endeavored to be proved out of John 13, nothing is made out of nothing; for there is not one syllable throughout that whole chapter of the paschal supper, but of a supper before the feast of the passover.

Clarke: Luk 22:22 - The Son of man goeth The Son of man goeth - That is, he is about to die, Απερχεσθαι, οιχεσθαι, abire , going, going away, and departing, are used, by ...

The Son of man goeth - That is, he is about to die, Απερχεσθαι, οιχεσθαι, abire , going, going away, and departing, are used, by the best Greek and Latin writers, for death and dying. See Rosenmuller.

Clarke: Luk 22:23 - They began to inquire among themselves They began to inquire among themselves - See the notes on Mat 26:23, Mat 26:24.

They began to inquire among themselves - See the notes on Mat 26:23, Mat 26:24.

Clarke: Luk 22:24 - There was also a strife among them There was also a strife among them - There are two different instances of this sort of contention or strife mentioned by the evangelists, each of wh...

There was also a strife among them - There are two different instances of this sort of contention or strife mentioned by the evangelists, each of which was accompanied with very different circumstances; one by Matthew, in Mat 18:1, etc., by Mark, Mar 9:33, etc.; and by Luke, in Luk 9:46, etc. That contention cannot have been the same with this which is mentioned here. The other, related in Mat 20:20, etc., and Mar 10:35, etc., must be what Luke intended here to record; and this strife or contention was occasioned by the request which Zebedee’ s wife made to our Lord in favor of her sons, James and John; but, then, Luke has mentioned this very much out of the order of time, it having happened while our Lord and his disciples were on their way to Jerusalem: Mat 20:17; Mar 10:32. See Bp. Pearce.

Clarke: Luk 22:25 - Are called benefactors Are called benefactors - The very Greek word used by the evangelist, ευεργεται, was the surname of some of the Ptolemies of Egypt; Ptolemy...

Are called benefactors - The very Greek word used by the evangelist, ευεργεται, was the surname of some of the Ptolemies of Egypt; Ptolemy Euergetes, i.e. the Benefactor. It was a custom among the ancient Romans to distribute part of the lands which they had conquered on the frontiers of the empire to their soldiers; those who enjoyed such lands were called beneficiarii , beneficed persons; and the lands themselves were termed beneficia, benefices , as being held on the beneficence of the sovereign; and it is no wonder that such sovereigns, however tyrannical or oppressive they might have been in other respects, were termed benefactors by those who were thus dependent on their bounty.

Clarke: Luk 22:26 - Let him be as the younger Let him be as the younger - Dr. Lightfoot justly conjectures that Peter was the eldest of all the disciples; and he supposes that the strife was kin...

Let him be as the younger - Dr. Lightfoot justly conjectures that Peter was the eldest of all the disciples; and he supposes that the strife was kindled between him and the sons of Zebedee, James and John. These three disciples were those whom Christ had distinguished by peculiar marks of his favor; and therefore it is natural to conclude that the strife lay between these three, the two brothers and Peter. Shall we or Peter be at the head? Neither, says our Lord. Let him, Peter, who is chief ( ὁ μειζων, the eldest) among you, be as, John, ὁ νεωτερος, the younger. The younger part of the disciples do not appear to have taken any part in this contention; and our Lord shows Peter, and the sons of Zebedee, that they must be as unambitious as the younger in order to be acknowledged as his disciples. Dr. Lightfoot thinks that Peter was the mover of this strife, and therefore our Lord rebukes him by name.

Clarke: Luk 22:29 - I appoint unto you a kingdom, as my Father hath appointed unto me I appoint unto you a kingdom, as my Father hath appointed unto me - The Codex Alexandrinus, with some other MSS., the later Syriac, and Origen, read...

I appoint unto you a kingdom, as my Father hath appointed unto me - The Codex Alexandrinus, with some other MSS., the later Syriac, and Origen, read in the first clause, διαθηκην, a covenant. I appoint unto you a Covenant, as my Father hath appointed unto me a kingdom: - Ye shall be ministers of the new covenant, as I am king in that spiritual kingdom to which it relates. This is a curious reading: but our Lord is probably to be understood as promising that they should get a kingdom - a state of blessedness, as he should get it - they must go through much tribulation in order to enter into the kingdom of God. So the Son of man suffered that he might enter into his glory: for the joy that was set before him, he endured the cross, and despised the shame, and is set down on the right hand of God.

Clarke: Luk 22:30 - Sit on thrones Sit on thrones - See on Mat 19:28 (note). Marcion left the whole of this verse out, according to Epiphanius: probably because he did not understand ...

Sit on thrones - See on Mat 19:28 (note). Marcion left the whole of this verse out, according to Epiphanius: probably because he did not understand it.

Clarke: Luk 22:31 - Simon, Simon Simon, Simon - When a name is thus repeated in the sacred writings, it appears to be always intended as an expression of love, manifested by a warni...

Simon, Simon - When a name is thus repeated in the sacred writings, it appears to be always intended as an expression of love, manifested by a warning voice. As if he had said, While thou and the others are contending for supremacy, Satan is endeavoring to destroy you all: but I have prayed for thee, as being in most danger

Clarke: Luk 22:31 - Satan hath desired - you Satan hath desired - you - That is, all the apostles, but particularly the three contenders: the plural pronoun, ὑμας, sufficiently proves th...

Satan hath desired - you - That is, all the apostles, but particularly the three contenders: the plural pronoun, ὑμας, sufficiently proves that these words were not addressed to Peter alone. Satan had already got one, Judas; he had nearly got another, Peter; and he wished to have all. But we see by this that the devil cannot even tempt a man unless he receive permission. He desires to do all evil; he is permitted only to do some.

Clarke: Luk 22:32 - I have prayed for thee I have prayed for thee - From the natural forwardness and impetuosity of thy own spirit, thou wilt be brought into the most imminent danger; but I h...

I have prayed for thee - From the natural forwardness and impetuosity of thy own spirit, thou wilt be brought into the most imminent danger; but I have supplicated for thee, that thy faith may not utterly fail - εκλειπῃ, from εκ, out, and λειπω, I fail, to fall utterly or entirely off. Peter’ s faith did fail, but not utterly: he did fall, but he did not fall off, apostatize, or forsake his Master and his cause finally, as Judas did. Every body sees, from Peter’ s denial of his Lord, that his faith did fail, and his great courage too; and yet they read, in the common translation, that Christ prayed that it might not fail: can they then conceive that our Lord’ s prayer was heard? The translation which I have given above removes this embarrassment and apparent contradiction. It was certainly Peter’ s advantage that our Lord did pray for him; but it was not so much for his honor that he should stand in need of such a prayer, beyond all others. Lightfoot

Clarke: Luk 22:32 - When thou art converted When thou art converted - Restored to a sense of thy folly and sin, and to me and my cause - establish these thy brethren. All the disciples forsook...

When thou art converted - Restored to a sense of thy folly and sin, and to me and my cause - establish these thy brethren. All the disciples forsook Jesus and fled, merely through fear of losing their lives; Peter, who continued for a while near him, denied his Master with oaths, and repeated this thrice: our Lord seems to intimate that, after this fall, Peter would become more cautious and circumspect than ever; and that he should become uncommonly strong in the faith, which was the case; and that, notwithstanding the baseness of his past conduct, he should be a proper instrument for strengthening the feeble minded, and supporting the weak. His two epistles to the persecuted Christians show how well he was qualified for this important work.

Clarke: Luk 22:34 - The cock shall not crow this day The cock shall not crow this day - Mat 26:34, and Mar 14:30, say, this night; both expressions are right, because the Jewish day, of twenty-four hou...

The cock shall not crow this day - Mat 26:34, and Mar 14:30, say, this night; both expressions are right, because the Jewish day, of twenty-four hours, began with the evening, and ended at the evening of the following day. On Peter’ s denial, see the notes on Mat 26:31-35 (note).

Clarke: Luk 22:35 - When I sent you without purse When I sent you without purse - See the notes on Mat 10:9, Mat 10:10.

When I sent you without purse - See the notes on Mat 10:9, Mat 10:10.

Clarke: Luk 22:36 - He that hath no sword He that hath no sword - Bishop Pearce supposes that the word μαχαιραν, sword, has been inserted here from what is said in Luk 22:38, as it ...

He that hath no sword - Bishop Pearce supposes that the word μαχαιραν, sword, has been inserted here from what is said in Luk 22:38, as it is evident our Lord never intended to make any resistance, or to suffer a sword to be used on the occasion; see Mat 26:52. The word stands rather oddly in the passage: the verse, translated in the order in which it stands, is as follows: And he who hath none, let him sell his garment and buy - a sword. Now it is plain that the verb πωλησατω, let him buy, may be referred to πηραν a scrip, in the former part of the verse: therefore if, according to the bishop’ s opinion, the word sword be omitted, the passage may be understood thus: "When I sent you out before, Luk 10:1, etc., I intended you to continue itinerants only for a few days, and to preach the Gospel only to your country-men; therefore you had but little need of a staff, purse, or scrip, as your journey was neither long, nor expensive; but now I am about to send you into all the world, to preach the Gospel to every creature; and, as ye shall be generally hated and persecuted for my sake, ye shall have need to make every prudent provision for your journey; and so necessary will it be for you to provide yourselves victuals, etc., for your passage through your inhospitable country, that, if any of you have no scrip or wallet, he should sell even his upper garment to provide one."Others, who are for retaining the word sword, think that it was a proverbial expression, intimating a time of great difficulty and danger, and that now the disciples had need to look to themselves, for his murderers were at hand. The reader will observe that these words were spoken to the disciples just before he went to the garden of Gethsemane, and that the danger was now so very near that there could be no time for any of them to go and sell his garment in order to purchase a sword to defend himself and his Master from the attack of the Jewish mob

Judea was at this time, as we have already noticed, much infested by robbers: while our Lord was with his disciples, they were perfectly safe, being shielded by his miraculous power. Shortly they must go into every part of the land, and will need weapons to defend themselves against wild beasts, and to intimidate wicked men, who, if they found them totally defenceless, would not hesitate to make them their prey, or take away their life. However the matter may be understood, we may rest satisfied that these swords were neither to be considered as offensive weapons, nor instruments to propagate the truth. The genius and spirit of the Christian religion is equally against both. Perhaps, in this counsel of our Lord, he refers to the contention about supremacy: as if he had said, Instead of contending among yourselves about who shall be the greatest, ye have more need to unite yourselves against the common enemy, who are now at hand: this counsel was calculated to show them the necessity of union among themselves, as their enemies were both numerous and powerful.

Clarke: Luk 22:37 - Must yet be accomplished Must yet be accomplished - Probably meaning that, though this prophecy did refer to some particular matter in the time of the prophet, yet it farthe...

Must yet be accomplished - Probably meaning that, though this prophecy did refer to some particular matter in the time of the prophet, yet it farther ( ετι ) related to Christ, and could not have its complete accomplishment but in his crucifixion as a criminal

Clarke: Luk 22:37 - For the things concerning me have an end For the things concerning me have an end - As if he had said, My work is now almost done; yours is only beginning; I am now about to be crucified an...

For the things concerning me have an end - As if he had said, My work is now almost done; yours is only beginning; I am now about to be crucified and numbered with the transgressors; think what will be done to you, and what ought to be done by you; and then think if this be a time for you to be contending with each other. Lightfoot.

Clarke: Luk 22:38 - Lord, behold, here are two swords. And he said unto them, It is enough Lord, behold, here are two swords. And he said unto them, It is enough - These words cannot be well understood as being an answer to the supposed co...

Lord, behold, here are two swords. And he said unto them, It is enough - These words cannot be well understood as being an answer to the supposed command of Christ, for every one who had no sword to go and sell his garment and buy one; for, in this case, they were not enough, or sufficient, as nine of the disciples must be without any instrument of defense; but they may be understood as pointing out the readiness and determination of Peter, and perhaps some others, to defend our Lord: Thou shalt not be treated as a transgressor; here are two swords, and we will fight for thee. In Luk 22:33, Peter had said, he was ready to go with Christ either to prison or death; which showed his strong resolution to stand by and defend his Master, even at the expense of his life. But, alas, he depended too much on himself

It is enough. The meaning probably is, there is enough said on the subject; as immediately after this he entered into his agony

I must here confess that the matter about the swords appear to me very obscure. I am afraid I do not understand it, and I know of none who does. Schoettgen and Lightfoot have said much on the subject; others have endeavored to get rid of the difficulty by translating μαχαιραν a knife, which was necessary on long journeys for providing forage and fuel; as they were to depend wholly on their own industry, under God, for all the necessaries of life, while going through the nations of the earth, preaching the Gospel to Jews and Gentiles. I cannot say which sense the reader should prefer.

Clarke: Luk 22:40 - When he was at the place When he was at the place - Viz. Gethsemane. On this agony of our Lord see the notes on Mat 26:36-46 (note).

When he was at the place - Viz. Gethsemane. On this agony of our Lord see the notes on Mat 26:36-46 (note).

Clarke: Luk 22:43 - There appeared an angel - from heaven There appeared an angel - from heaven - It was as necessary that the fullest evidence should be given, not only of our Lord’ s Divinity, but al...

There appeared an angel - from heaven - It was as necessary that the fullest evidence should be given, not only of our Lord’ s Divinity, but also of his humanity: his miracles sufficiently attested the former; his hunger, weariness, and agony in the garden, as well as his death and burial, were proofs of the latter. As man, he needs the assistance of an angel to support his body, worn down by fatigue and suffering. See at the end of Luk 22:44 (note).

Clarke: Luk 22:44 - Prayed more earnestly Prayed more earnestly - With greater emphasis and earnestness than usual, with strong crying and tears, Heb 5:7; the reason given for which is, that...

Prayed more earnestly - With greater emphasis and earnestness than usual, with strong crying and tears, Heb 5:7; the reason given for which is, that he was in an agony. Kypke well observes, Vox αγωνια summum animi angorem et dolorem indicat; et idem est, quod αδημονειν, Mat 26:37; Mar 14:34. "The word αγωνια (agony) points out the utmost anguish and grief of soul, and is of the same import with αδημονειν in Matthew and Mark."See the note on Mat 26:37

Clarke: Luk 22:44 - Drops of blood Drops of blood - See the note on Mat 26:38. Some have thought that the meaning of the words is, that the sweat was so profuse that every drop was as...

Drops of blood - See the note on Mat 26:38. Some have thought that the meaning of the words is, that the sweat was so profuse that every drop was as large as a drop of blood, not that the sweat was blood itself: but this does not appear likely. There have been cases in which persons in a debilitated state of body, or through horror of soul, have had their sweat tinged with blood. Dr. Mead from Galen observes, Contingere interdum, poros ex multo aut fervido spiritu adeo dilatari, ut etiam exeat sanguis per eos, fiatque sudor sanguineus . "Cases sometimes happen in which, through mental pressure, the pores may be so dilated that the blood may issue from them; so that there may be a bloody sweat."And Bishop Pearce gives an instance from Thuanus (De Thou) of an Italian gentleman being so distressed with the fear of death that his body was covered with a bloody sweat. But it is fully evident that the fear of death could have no place in the mind of our blessed Lord. He was in the bloom of life, in perfect health, and had never suffered any thing from disease of any kind; this sweat was most assuredly produced by a preternatural cause. See at the end of the chapter.

Clarke: Luk 22:48 - Betrayest thou the Son of man with a kiss? Betrayest thou the Son of man with a kiss? - Dost thou attempt to kiss me as a friend, while thou art delivering me up into the hands of my enemies?...

Betrayest thou the Son of man with a kiss? - Dost thou attempt to kiss me as a friend, while thou art delivering me up into the hands of my enemies? We need not wonder at all this, as Satan himself had entered into the heart of this traitor, see Luk 22:3; consequently we can expect nothing from him but what is fell, deceitful, and cruel.

Clarke: Luk 22:50 - Cut off his right ear Cut off his right ear - See the note on Mat 26:51.

Cut off his right ear - See the note on Mat 26:51.

Clarke: Luk 22:51 - Suffer ye thus far Suffer ye thus far - Or, Suffer me to go thus far. As they had now a firm hold of Christ, Mat 26:50, he wished them to permit him to go as far as Ma...

Suffer ye thus far - Or, Suffer me to go thus far. As they had now a firm hold of Christ, Mat 26:50, he wished them to permit him to go as far as Malchus, whose ear was cut off, that he might heal it. See the objections brought against this interpretation answered by Kypke; and see the examples he produces. However, the words may be understood as an address to his disciples: Let them proceed; make no resistance; for in this way only are the Scriptures to be fulfilled.

Clarke: Luk 22:53 - I was daily with you in the temple I was daily with you in the temple - Alluding to the four preceding days, during the whole of which he taught in the temple, see Luk 21:37, and Mat ...

I was daily with you in the temple - Alluding to the four preceding days, during the whole of which he taught in the temple, see Luk 21:37, and Mat 21:17

Clarke: Luk 22:53 - This is your hour, and the power of darkness This is your hour, and the power of darkness - That is, the time in which you are permitted to unrein your malice; which ye could not do before, bec...

This is your hour, and the power of darkness - That is, the time in which you are permitted to unrein your malice; which ye could not do before, because God did not permit you; and so perfectly are ye under his control that neither you nor the prince of darkness can proceed a hair’ s breadth against me but through this permission: see at the end of the chapter. What a comfortable thought is it to the followers of Christ, that neither men nor demons can act against them but by the permission of their heavenly Father, and that he will not suffer any of those who trust in him to be tried above what they are able to bear, and will make the trial issue in their greater salvation, and in his glory!

Clarke: Luk 22:56 - A certain maid beheld him A certain maid beheld him - Or, Attentively beholding him, ατενισασα . And this she did by the help of the light of the fire at which Pete...

A certain maid beheld him - Or, Attentively beholding him, ατενισασα . And this she did by the help of the light of the fire at which Peter sat.

Clarke: Luk 22:57 - And he denied him And he denied him - See the notes on Mat 26:58, Mat 26:69, etc.

And he denied him - See the notes on Mat 26:58, Mat 26:69, etc.

Clarke: Luk 22:61 - The Lord turned, and looked upon Peter The Lord turned, and looked upon Peter - See the note on Mat 26:75, where this delicate reproof is particularly noted.

The Lord turned, and looked upon Peter - See the note on Mat 26:75, where this delicate reproof is particularly noted.

Clarke: Luk 22:62 - And Peter went out And Peter went out - The word Peter is omitted by BDKLM, and many other good MSS., with some of the ancient versions. Griesbach leaves it out of the...

And Peter went out - The word Peter is omitted by BDKLM, and many other good MSS., with some of the ancient versions. Griesbach leaves it out of the text.

Clarke: Luk 22:63 - Mocked him, and smote him Mocked him, and smote him - This and the following verses are placed by Matthew and Mark before the relation of Peter’ s denial. For their expl...

Mocked him, and smote him - This and the following verses are placed by Matthew and Mark before the relation of Peter’ s denial. For their explanation, see on Mat 26:67, Mat 26:68 (note).

Clarke: Luk 22:68 - And if I also ask you And if I also ask you - Concerning the Christ, in case ye cannot give me such an answer as may prove I am not the Christ, ye will not let me go; for...

And if I also ask you - Concerning the Christ, in case ye cannot give me such an answer as may prove I am not the Christ, ye will not let me go; for I know ye are determined to put me to death.

Clarke: Luk 22:69 - Hereafter Hereafter - From this very time, απο του νυν . The kingdom of God is now going to be set up. See the note on Mat 16:27, Mat 16:28.

Hereafter - From this very time, απο του νυν . The kingdom of God is now going to be set up. See the note on Mat 16:27, Mat 16:28.

Clarke: Luk 22:70 - Art thou then the Son of God? Art thou then the Son of God? - They all insisted on an answer to this question, and the high priest particularly put it to him, Mat 26:63.

Art thou then the Son of God? - They all insisted on an answer to this question, and the high priest particularly put it to him, Mat 26:63.

Clarke: Luk 22:71 - We ourselves have heard We ourselves have heard - We have heard him profess himself the Son of God; he is therefore guilty of blasphemy, and, as an impious pretender to a D...

We ourselves have heard - We have heard him profess himself the Son of God; he is therefore guilty of blasphemy, and, as an impious pretender to a Divine mission, we must proceed against and condemn him to death. See the note on Mat 26:66. Thus they proceeded as far as they could; he must now be brought before Pilate, as the Jews had no power to put him to death. His trial before Pilate is related in the subsequent chapter

On our Lord’ s agony in the garden, related in the 43d and 44th verses, much has been written, but to little purpose. The cause of this agony seems not to have been well understood; and there have been many wild conjectures concerning it. Some think it was occasioned by "the Divine wrath pressing in upon him; for, as he was bearing the sin of the world, God looked on and treated him as if he were a sinner."There is something very shocking in this supposition; and yet it is truly astonishing how general it is. The ministry of the angel, in this case, is a sufficient refutation of this opinion; for what sort of strength could an angel give Christ against God’ s indignation? Angelic strength could not enable him to bear either the sin of the world or God’ s wrath. If an angel could have succoured him in this, an angel might have made the whole atonement. Indeed, the ministry of the angel, who must have been sent from God, and sent in love too, is a full proof that God’ s wrath was not poured out on our blessed Redeemer at this time. Dr. Lightfoot conjectures that his conflict in the garden was with a devil, who appeared to him in a bodily shape, most horrible; and that it was through this apparition that he began to be sore amazed, and very heavy, Mar 14:33; for, as Satan assaulted the first Adam in a garden in a bodily shape, it is not unreasonable to conclude that in the same way he assaulted the second Adam in a garden. St. Luke tells us, Luk 4:13, that when the devil had finished all his temptations, he departed from him for a season: this season in the garden, probably, was the season, or fit opportunity, for him to return - the prince of this world came and found nothing in him, Joh 14:30. But, though there was nothing in the immaculate Jesus on which Satan could work, yet he might, as the doctor supposes, assume some horrible shape, in order to appal his mind, and shake his firmness; and the evangelist seems to intimate that he had desired to be permitted to try or sift the disciples in this way, see Luk 22:31; and it is probable that it is to some personal, horrid appearance, that the apostle alludes when he speaks of the messenger of Satan that buffeted him, 2Co 12:7. The angel, therefore, from heaven, may be supposed to come against this angel from hell; and, as the one appeared to terrify, the other appeared to strengthen him. It was not necessary to exert the Divine power to crush this devil, and therefore an angel from heaven is sent to counteract his influence. This is the sum of Dr. Lightfoot’ s reasonings upon this very difficult subject

Others suppose that, while our Lord was praying intensely in the garden, the extreme fervor of his application to God in the behalf of the poor deluded Jews, and in behalf of the world, was too much for his human nature to support; that he, in consequence, fell into a swoon, in which he had a Vision of an angel coming from heaven to strengthen him. Let these sentiments stand on their respective merits

What renders this circumstance more difficult is, that there is no mention of it in any of the other evangelists: and it is worthy of remark that, among many of the ancients, the authenticity of these two verses, the 43d and 44th, has been doubted, and in consequence they are omitted in several MSS., and in some versions and fathers. The Codex Alexandrinus and the Codex Vaticanus, the two oldest MSS. in the world, omit both verses; in some other very ancient MSS. they stand with an asterisk before them, as a mark of dubiousness; and they are both wanting in the Coptic Fragments published by Dr. Ford. They are however extant in such a vast number of MSS., versions, and fathers, as to leave no doubt with most critics of their authenticity. After all that has been said, or perhaps can be said on this subject, there will remain mysteries which only the bright light of the eternal world can sufficiently illustrate. That Christ was now suffering, the just for the unjust, that he might bring us to God, and that he was bearing in his body the punishment due to their sins, I have no doubt: and that the agony of his mind, in these vicarious sufferings, caused the effusion from his body, of the bloody sweat, may be easily credited without supposing him to be at all under the displeasure of his heavenly Father; for, as God can see nothing but as it is, he could not see him as a sinner who was purity itself. In every act, Jesus was that beloved Son in whom the Father was ever well pleased

As to the angel strengthening him, probably no more is meant by it than a friendly sympathizing of one of those heavenly beings with their Lord in distress: this circumstance is the most difficult in the whole relation; but, understood thus, the difficulty is removed; for what strength could the highest angel in heaven afford to our blessed Lord in his atoning acts? Surely, none. The bare supposition is insupportable. But, if we allow that the angel came to sympathize with him during his passions the whole account will appear plain and consistent.

Calvin: Luk 22:17 - NO PHRASE As Luke mentions that the cup was twice presented by Christ, we must inquire, in the first place, if it be a repetition, (as the Evangelists are wo...

As Luke mentions that the cup was twice presented by Christ, we must inquire, in the first place, if it be a repetition, (as the Evangelists are wont frequently to say the same thing twice,) or if Christ, after having tasted the cup, repeated the same thing a second time. This latter conjecture appears to me to be probable; for we know that the holy fathers, during sacrifices, observed the solemn rite of tasting the cup; 188 and hence those words of the Psalmist,

I will take the cup of salvation,
and will call on the name of the Lord, (Psa 116:13.)

I have no doubt, therefore, that Christ, according to the ancient custom, tasted the cup in the holy feast, which otherwise could not have been correctly observed; and Luke expressly mentions this, before coming to give an account of the new mystery, which was a totally different institution from the paschal lamb. It was in compliance also with received and ordinary custom, that he is expressly said to have given thanks, after having taken the cup. For at the commencement of the supper, I have no doubt, he prayed, as he was accustomed never to sit down at table without calling on God; but now he wished to discharge once more the same duty, that he might not leave out a ceremony which, I have just now shown, was connected with the sacred act of taking the cup and tasting it. 189

Calvin: Luk 22:19 - Which is given for you Luk 22:19.Which is given for you The other two Evangelists leave out this clause, which, however, is far from being superfluous; for the reason why th...

Luk 22:19.Which is given for you The other two Evangelists leave out this clause, which, however, is far from being superfluous; for the reason why the flesh of Christ becomes bread to us is, that by it salvation was once procured for us. And as the crucified flesh itself is of no advantage but to those who eat it by faith, so, on the other hand, the eating of it would be unmeaning, and of hardly any value, were it not in reference to the sacrifice which was once offered. Whoever then desires that the flesh of Christ should afford nourishment to him, let him look at it as having been offered on the cross, that it might be the price of our reconciliation with God. But what Matthew and Mark leave out in reference to the symbol of bread, they express in reference to the cup, saying, that the blood was to be shed for the remission of sins; and this observation must be extended to both clauses. So then, in order that we may feed aright on the flesh of Christ, we must contemplate the sacrifice of it, because it was necessary that it should have been once given for our salvation, that it might every day be given to us.

Calvin: Luk 22:28 - You are they who have continued with me Luk 22:28.You are they who have continued with me Although Luke appears to relate a different discourse of Christ, and one which was delivered at a di...

Luk 22:28.You are they who have continued with me Although Luke appears to relate a different discourse of Christ, and one which was delivered at a different time, yet I have no doubt that it refers to the same time. For it is not a continued discourse of Christ that is here related, but detached sentences, without any regard to the order of time, as we shall shortly afterwards have occasion to state. But he employs more words than Matthew; for he declares that, as the apostles had accompanied him, and had remained steadfastly in his temptations, they would also be partakers of his glory. It is asked, in what sense does he call them his temptations? I think that he means the contests by which God tried him and the apostles in common. And properly did he use the word temptations; for, according to the feeling of human nature, his faith and patience were actually tried.

Calvin: Luk 22:29 - And I appoint to you the kingdom 29.And I appoint to you the kingdom Here he makes them not only judges, but kings; for he shares with them the kingdom which he received from th...

29.And I appoint to you the kingdom Here he makes them not only judges, but kings; for he shares with them the kingdom which he received from the Father There is an emphasis in the word appoint, that they may not, by warmth and vehemence of desire, hasten too eagerly to possess the kingdom of which he alone has the lawful right to dispose. By his own example, also, he exhorts them to patience; for, though he was ordained by the Father to be a King, yet he was not immediately raised to his glory, but even emptied Himself, (Phi 2:7,) and by the ignominy of the cross obtained kingly honor. To eat and drink at his table is put metaphorically for being made partakers of the same glory.

Calvin: Luk 22:31 - Lo // That he may sift you as wheat Luk 22:31.Lo, Satan hath desired. The other two Evangelists relate more briefly and simply, that our Lord foretold to his disciples their fall. But ...

Luk 22:31.Lo, Satan hath desired. The other two Evangelists relate more briefly and simply, that our Lord foretold to his disciples their fall. But the words of Luke contain more abundant instruction; for Christ does not speak of the future trouble in the way of narrative, but expressly declares, that they will have a contest with Satan, and, at the same time, promises to them victory. It is a highly useful admonition, whenever we meet with any thing that gives us offense, to have always before our eyes the snares of Satan; as Paul also teaches, that

we wrestle not with flesh and blood, but with spiritual armies,
(Eph 6:12.)

The meaning of the words therefore is: “When, a short time hence, you shall see me oppressed, know that Satan employs these arms to fight against you, and that this is a convenient opportunity for destroying your faith.” I have said that this is a useful doctrine, because it frequently happens that, from want of consideration, we are overcome by disregarding temptations, which we would regard as formidable, if we reflected that they are the fiery darts (Eph 6:16) of a vigorous and powerful enemy. And though he now speaks of that singularly fierce attack, by which the disciples, at one time, received dreadful shocks, so that their faith was well nigh extinguished, yet he manifestly conveys a more extensive doctrine, that Satan continually goes about, roaring for his prey. As he is impelled by such furious madness to destroy us, nothing is more unreasonable than that we should give ourselves up to drowsiness. Before there is apparent necessity for fighting, let us already prepare ourselves; for we know that Satan desires our destruction, and with great skill and assiduity seizes on every method of injuring us. And when we come to the conflict, let us know that all temptations, from whatever quarter they come, were forged in the workshop of that enemy.

That he may sift you as wheat The metaphor of sifting is not in every respect applicable; for we have elsewhere seen that the Gospel is compared to a winnowing-fan or sieve, by which the wheat is purified from the chaff (Mat 3:12;) but here it simply means to toss up and down, or to shake with violence, because the apostles were driven about with unusual severity by the death of Christ. This ought to be understood, because there is nothing in which Satan takes less delight than the purification of believers. Yet though it be for a different purpose that he shakes them, it is nevertheless true, that they are driven and tossed about in every direction, just as the wheat is shaken by the winnowing-fan. But we shall shortly afterwards see that a still more disastrous fulfillment of these words was experienced by the disciples. And this is what is meant by the words of our Lord, as related by Matthew and Mark: you will all be offended at me. They mean that the disciples will not only be attacked, but will nearly give way; because the ignominious treatment of Christ will quite overpower their minds. For whereas it was their duty to advance steadily with their Master to the cross, fear kept them back. Their infirmity is thus exhibited to them, that by prayers and groans they may betake themselves to God’s holy protection.

Calvin: Luk 22:35 - And he said to them Luk 22:35.And he said to them The whole object of this discourse of Christ is to show, that hitherto he spared his disciples, so as to lay on them no ...

Luk 22:35.And he said to them The whole object of this discourse of Christ is to show, that hitherto he spared his disciples, so as to lay on them no heavier burden than they were able to bear. He reminds them of the indulgence exercised during the past time, that they may now prepare themselves with greater alacrity for severer warfare. For why did he, while they were altogether destitute of skill and training, keep them in the shade and in repose, at a distance from the darts of the enemy, except that, by gradually gathering courage and strength during the interval of leisure, they might be better prepared for fighting? The meaning is: “Hitherto you have had an easy and prosperous condition, because I wished to treat you gently, like children; the full time is now come, when I must employ you in labor, like men.” But the comparison which he makes between the two periods is still more extensive; for if they wanted nothing, when they proceeded to discharge their office without taking with them a stock of provisions, when a state of peace allowed them leisure to provide for their necessities, much more now, in the midst of tumult and excitement, ought they to lay aside anxiety about the present life, and run wherever necessity calls them. And although Christ makes special mention of what he had done in reference to the twelve apostles, he shows likewise, that while we are still beginners and weak in faith, he continues to indulge us till we grow up to be men; and, therefore, that they act improperly who devote their leisure to the pursuit of luxuries, which abate the rigor of their faith. And let us not doubt that Christ has regard to us in the present day, since he does not hurry us into the battle while we are still untrained and inexperienced, but, before sending us to the field, supplies us with arms and courage.

Calvin: Luk 22:36 - But now let him who hath a purse take it 36.But now let him who hath a purse take it In metaphorical language he threatens that they will soon meet with great troubles and fierce attacks; ju...

36.But now let him who hath a purse take it In metaphorical language he threatens that they will soon meet with great troubles and fierce attacks; just as when a general, intending to lead the soldiers into the field of battle, calls them to arms, and orders them to lay aside every other care, and think of nothing else than fighting, not even to take any thought about procuring food. For he shows them—as is usually done in cases of extreme danger—that every thing must be sold, even to the scrip and the purse, in order to supply them with arms. And yet he does not call them to an outward conflict, but only, under the comparison of fighting, he warns them of the severe struggles of temptations which they must undergo, and of the fierce attacks which they must sustain in spiritual contests. That they might more willingly throw themselves on the providence of God, he first reminded them, as I have said, that God took care to supply them with what was necessary, even when they carried with them no supplies of food and raiment. Having experienced so large and seasonable supplies from God, they ought not, for the future, to entertain any doubt that he would provide for every one of their necessities.

Calvin: Luk 22:37 - That this also which is written must be accomplished in me // For those things which relate to me have an end 37.That this also which is written must be accomplished in me This adverb also is emphatic; for Christ means, that he had not yet discharged ever...

37.That this also which is written must be accomplished in me This adverb also is emphatic; for Christ means, that he had not yet discharged every part of his office, till he had been ranked with ungodly and wicked men, as if he had been one of their class. But that their minds might not be too much disturbed by the baseness of such a transaction, he quotes a prediction of Isaiah, (Isa 53:12) which, it is certain, cannot be explained but as referring to the Messiah. Now since it is there said that he was to be reckoned among transgressors, such a spectacle, however atrocious, ought not to alarm believers, or to alienate them from Christ, who could not have been their Redeemer in any other way than by taking upon himself the shame and disgrace of a wicked man. For nothing is better adapted to remove grounds of offense, when we are alarmed by any strange occurrence, than to acknowledge that it so pleases God, and that whatever takes place by his appointment is not done rashly, or without a good reason; more especially when that which is made evident by the event itself was anciently predicted. Since, then, the disciples ought to expect a Redeemer such as God had formerly promised, and since Isaiah had expressly declared, that in order that he might deliver us from the guilt of offenses the punishment must be laid on him, (Isa 53:5,) this ought to be sufficient for abating the horror of the disciples, and for preventing them from entertaining less esteem for Christ.

For those things which relate to me have an end By these words, immediately added, he means that the prophets spoke nothing in vain. For this Greek phrase, τέλος ἔχει, have an end; means that they are accomplished, or put in effect. Now when every thing that the prophets spoke is verified by the event, it ought rather to contribute to strengthen our faith, than to strike us with alarm or anxiety. But while Christ encourages and comforts the disciples by this single argument, that all the predictions must be accomplished, the very procedure of the divine purpose contains within itself no ordinary ground of confidence, which is, that Christ was subjected to the condemnation which we deserved, and was reconciled among transgressors, that we, who are transgressors, and loaded with crimes, might be presented by him to the Father as righteous. For we are reckoned pure and free from sins before God, because the Lamb, who was pure and free from every blemish, was placed in our room, as we shah have occasion to state again under the next chapter.

Calvin: Luk 22:38 - Lord, lo, here are two swords 38.Lord, lo, here are two swords It was truly shameful and stupid ignorance, that the disciples, after having been so often informed about bearing th...

38.Lord, lo, here are two swords It was truly shameful and stupid ignorance, that the disciples, after having been so often informed about bearing the cross, imagine that they must fight with swords of iron. When they say that they have two swords, it is uncertain whether they mean that they are well prepared against their enemies, or complain that they are ill provided with arms. It is evident, at least, that they were so stupid as not to think of a spiritual enemy. As to the inference which the Doctors of Canon Law draw from these words — that their mitered bishops have a double jurisdiction — it is not only an offensive allegory, but a detestable mockery, by which they ridicule the word of God. And it was necessary that the slaves of Antichrist should fall into such madness, of openly trampling under feet, by sacrilegious contempt, the sacred oracles of God.

Calvin: Luk 22:51 - And having touched his ear, he healed him Luk 22:51.And having touched his ear, he healed him By his foolish zeal Peter had brought grievous reproach on his Master and his doctrine; and there ...

Luk 22:51.And having touched his ear, he healed him By his foolish zeal Peter had brought grievous reproach on his Master and his doctrine; and there can be no doubt, that this was a contrivance by which Satan attempted to involve the Gospel in eternal disgrace, as if Christ had kept company with assassins and seditious persons for revolutionary purposes. This, I think, was the reason why Christ healed the wound which Peter had inflicted. But a fearful and amazing stupidity must have seized his adversaries, who were not at all affected by having seen such a miracle. And yet there is the less reason to wonder that they did not see the power of Christ displayed in the person of another, when, after having themselves been laid prostrate by his voice, they still continued to rage, (Joh 18:6.) Such is the spirit of giddiness by which Satan maddens the reprobate, when the Lord has given them over to blindness. Above all, in the person himself who was healed, there is a striking instance of ingratitude; for neither did the divine power of Christ subdue him to repentance for his hardness, nor was he overcome by kindness so as to be changed from an enemy into a disciple. For it is a foolish imagination of the monks that he was also healed in his soul, that the work of Christ might not be left incomplete; as if the goodness of God were not every day poured out on those who are unworthy.

Defender: Luk 22:3 - Satan into Judas Satan "possessed" Judas at this juncture, just as he had once possessed the human bodies of the kings of Babylon and Tyre (Isa 14:12-15; Eze 28:12-15)...

Satan "possessed" Judas at this juncture, just as he had once possessed the human bodies of the kings of Babylon and Tyre (Isa 14:12-15; Eze 28:12-15) and will possess the body of the Antichrist (2Th 2:3; Rev 13:3-5). Before a demon (or, in this case, Satan) can take over the body of a human being, that person must somehow have made himself or herself receptive to his temptations. The sins of Satan himself (pride, unbelief, covetousness, blasphemy) are used most effectively in temptation. These sins of the mind soon lead to grosser sins of the flesh and leave the person open to full demonic control. In Judas' case, his covetousness led to his becoming a thief and finally to his lethal betrayal of his teacher and friend. For this most vital function, however, Satan had to "enter" him. Note also Joh 13:2, Joh 13:27."

Defender: Luk 22:20 - in my blood For the spiritual and prophetic significance of the Lord's supper, see the comments on the parallel accounts in Mat 26:28, note; and Mar 14:24-27, not...

For the spiritual and prophetic significance of the Lord's supper, see the comments on the parallel accounts in Mat 26:28, note; and Mar 14:24-27, note."

Defender: Luk 22:31 - Satan hath desired Satan had failed completely in his effort to tempt Jesus, so evidently he decided to seek the fall of the man who seemed to be the leader of His apost...

Satan had failed completely in his effort to tempt Jesus, so evidently he decided to seek the fall of the man who seemed to be the leader of His apostles. As in the case of Job some two thousand years before, Jesus assured Peter that he would not lose his faith (Luk 22:32), and that the end result of Peter's trial, like that of Job's, would be a source of blessing to others."

Defender: Luk 22:36 - buy one These instructions were quite different from those He had given before (Luk 9:3; Luk 10:4; Luk 22:35; Luk 9:56). Before, He was with the disciples, an...

These instructions were quite different from those He had given before (Luk 9:3; Luk 10:4; Luk 22:35; Luk 9:56). Before, He was with the disciples, and they were being trained. Now, however, He would no longer be with them. After that night they must go forth into the world on their permanent mission, and they must have the usual means of survival in a hostile world."

Defender: Luk 22:37 - among the transgressors The Lord here quotes Isa 53:12. Until this point, He had merely encountered unbelief and hostility from the ruling establishment. Now, they were deter...

The Lord here quotes Isa 53:12. Until this point, He had merely encountered unbelief and hostility from the ruling establishment. Now, they were determined to have Him executed as a common criminal, not knowing they would actually be fulfilling a key Messianic prophecy. He was numbered with the criminals that we might be numbered with the saints (Rev 5:9-12)."

Defender: Luk 22:38 - two swords One of the disciples (probably Peter), misunderstood what Jesus said, thinking He was telling them they would have to defend Him that very night. The ...

One of the disciples (probably Peter), misunderstood what Jesus said, thinking He was telling them they would have to defend Him that very night. The Lord simply told them, in effect, to quit talking about it, knowing they would not really understand until later."

Defender: Luk 22:43 - an angel Jesus was enduring the testing in the garden only as a man, not calling on His own divine nature, and it was appropriate that the Father would send an...

Jesus was enduring the testing in the garden only as a man, not calling on His own divine nature, and it was appropriate that the Father would send an angel to encourage Him for the ordeal ahead. Only Luke mentions this incident.

Defender: Luk 22:43 - drops of blood Luke is also the only gospel writer to mention the bloody sweat, possibly because of his interest as a physician in this rare physiological phenomenon...

Luke is also the only gospel writer to mention the bloody sweat, possibly because of his interest as a physician in this rare physiological phenomenon, which spoke eloquently of the intense spiritual agony Jesus was suffering as He faced the terrible trauma of being made sin and having the Father forsake Him, thus enduring hell itself for lost sinners."

Defender: Luk 22:53 - your hour This was not only the hour for which Christ's human enemies had been planning, but also the hour of Satan and all his dark powers. At the same time, i...

This was not only the hour for which Christ's human enemies had been planning, but also the hour of Satan and all his dark powers. At the same time, it was also the hour for which Christ had come into the world (Joh 12:27), when by His being made sin and dying for sin He would once for all defeat Satan and take away the sin of the world (Joh 1:29)."

Defender: Luk 22:61 - looked upon Peter Peter had forgotten his confident boast of just a few hours earlier (Luk 22:33), and Jesus' prediction of his denial (Luk 22:34). It only took one loo...

Peter had forgotten his confident boast of just a few hours earlier (Luk 22:33), and Jesus' prediction of his denial (Luk 22:34). It only took one look from Christ, however, and he remembered."

Defender: Luk 22:62 - wept bitterly In spite of Satan's sifting of Peter (Luk 22:31), Jesus had promised that Peter's faith would not fail and he would be converted ("turned around"). Pe...

In spite of Satan's sifting of Peter (Luk 22:31), Jesus had promised that Peter's faith would not fail and he would be converted ("turned around"). Peter's bitter weeping when Jesus looked at him, showed that his restoration was beginning."

TSK: Luk 22:1 - -- Exod. 12:6-23; Lev 23:5, Lev 23:6; Mat 26:2; Mar 14:1, Mar 14:2, Mar 14:12; Joh 11:55-57; 1Co 5:7, 1Co 5:8

TSK: Luk 22:2 - -- Luk 19:47, Luk 19:48, Luk 20:19; Psa 2:1-5; Mat 21:38, Mat 21:45, Mat 21:46, Mat 26:3-5; Joh 11:47-53, Joh 11:57; Act 4:27

TSK: Luk 22:3 - entered // being entered : Mat 26:14; Mar 14:10,Mar 14:11; Joh 6:70,Joh 6:71, Joh 12:6, Joh 13:2, Joh 13:27; Act 5:3 being : Luk 22:21, Luk 6:16; Psa 41:9, Psa 55:12-1...

TSK: Luk 22:4 - went went : Mat 26:14; Mar 14:10,Mar 14:11

TSK: Luk 22:5 - and covenanted and covenanted : Zec 11:12, Zec 11:13; Mat 26:15-16, Mat 27:3-5; Act 1:18, Act 8:20; 1Ti 6:9, 1Ti 6:10; 2Pe 2:3, 2Pe 2:15; Jud 1:11

TSK: Luk 22:6 - in the absence of the multitude in the absence of the multitude : or, without tumult, Mat 26:5; Mar 14:2

in the absence of the multitude : or, without tumult, Mat 26:5; Mar 14:2

TSK: Luk 22:7 - -- Luk 22:1; Exo 12:6, Exo 12:18; Mat 26:17; Mar 14:12

TSK: Luk 22:8 - he // Go he : Mar 14:13-16 Go : Luk 1:6; Mat 3:15; Gal 4:4, Gal 4:5

TSK: Luk 22:10 - -- Luk 19:29-40; 1Sa 10:2-7; Mat 26:18, Mat 26:19; Joh 16:4; Act 8:26-29

TSK: Luk 22:11 - The Master // Where is The Master : Luk 19:31, Luk 19:34; Mat 21:3; Joh 11:28 Where is : Luk 19:5; Rev 3:20

The Master : Luk 19:31, Luk 19:34; Mat 21:3; Joh 11:28

Where is : Luk 19:5; Rev 3:20

TSK: Luk 22:12 - he // a large he : Joh 2:25, Joh 21:17; Act 16:14, Act 16:15 a large : Act 1:13, Act 20:8

TSK: Luk 22:13 - -- Luk 21:33; Joh 2:5, Joh 11:40; Heb 11:8

TSK: Luk 22:14 - -- Deu 16:6, Deu 16:7; Mat 26:20; Mar 14:17

TSK: Luk 22:15 - With desire I have desired With desire I have desired : or, I have heartily desired, Luk 12:50; Joh 4:34, Joh 13:1, Joh 17:1

With desire I have desired : or, I have heartily desired, Luk 12:50; Joh 4:34, Joh 13:1, Joh 17:1

TSK: Luk 22:16 - I will not // until I will not : Luk 22:18-20 until : Luk 22:30, Luk 12:37, Luk 14:15; Joh 6:27, Joh 6:50-58; Act 10:41; 1Co 5:7, 1Co 5:8; Heb 10:1-10; Rev 19:9

TSK: Luk 22:17 - took // gave took : Psa 23:5, Psa 116:13; Jer 16:7 gave : Luk 22:19, Luk 9:16; Deu 8:10; 1Sa 9:13; Rom 14:6; 1Ti 4:4, 1Ti 4:5

TSK: Luk 22:18 - I will not // the fruit // until I will not : Luk 22:16; Mat 26:29; Mar 14:23, Mar 15:23 the fruit : Jdg 9:13; Psa 104:15; Pro 31:6, Pro 31:7; Son 5:1; Isa 24:9-11, Isa 25:6, Isa 55:1...

TSK: Luk 22:19 - he took // gave thanks // is my // given // this do he took : Mat 26:26-28; Mar 14:22-24; 1Co 10:16, 1Co 11:23-29 gave thanks : Luk 22:17, Luk 24:30; Joh 6:23; 1Th 5:18 is my : Luk 22:20; Gen 41:26, Gen...

TSK: Luk 22:20 - This This : Exo 24:8; Zec 9:11; 1Co 10:16-21, 1Co 11:25; Heb 8:6-13, Heb 9:17, Heb 12:24; Heb 13:20

TSK: Luk 22:21 - -- Job 19:19; Psa 41:9; Mic 7:5, Mic 7:6; Mat 26:21-23; Mar 14:18; Joh 13:18, Joh 13:19, Joh 13:21, Joh 13:26

TSK: Luk 22:22 - truly // but truly : Luk 24:25-27, Luk 24:46; Gen 3:15; Psa. 22:1-31, 69:1-36; Isa 53:1-12; Dan 9:24-26; Zec 13:7; Mat 26:24, Mat 26:53, Mat 26:54; Mar 14:21; Act ...

TSK: Luk 22:23 - -- Mat 26:22; Mar 14:19; Joh 13:22-25

TSK: Luk 22:24 - -- Luk 9:46; Mat 20:20-24; Mar 9:34, Mar 10:37-41; Rom 12:10; 1Co 13:4; Phi 2:3-5; Jam 4:5, Jam 4:6; 1Pe 5:5, 1Pe 5:6

TSK: Luk 22:25 - -- Mat 20:25-28; Mar 10:41-45

TSK: Luk 22:26 - -- Luk 9:48; Mat 18:3-5, Mat 23:8-12; Rom 12:2; 1Pe 5:3; 3Jo 1:9, 3Jo 1:10

TSK: Luk 22:27 - -- Luk 12:37, Luk 17:7-9; Mat 20:28; Joh 13:5-16; 2Co 8:9; Phi 2:7, Phi 2:8

TSK: Luk 22:28 - -- Mat 19:28, Mat 19:29, Mat 24:13; Joh 6:67, Joh 6:68, Joh 8:31; Act 1:25; Heb 2:18, Heb 4:15

TSK: Luk 22:29 - -- Luk 12:32, Luk 19:17; Mat 24:47, Mat 25:34; 1Co 9:25; 2Co 1:7; 2Ti 2:12; Jam 2:5; 1Pe 5:4; Rev 21:14

TSK: Luk 22:30 - eat // and sit eat : Luk 22:16-18, Luk 12:37, Luk 14:15; 2Sa 9:9, 2Sa 9:10, 2Sa 19:28; Mat 8:11; Rev 19:9 and sit : Psa 49:14; Mat 19:28; 1Co 6:2, 1Co 6:3; Rev 2:26,...

TSK: Luk 22:31 - Simon // Satan // sift Simon : Luk 10:41; Act 9:4 Satan : Job 1:8-11, Job 2:3-6; Zec 3:1; 1Pe 5:8; Rev 12:10 sift : Amo 9:9

TSK: Luk 22:32 - I have // thy faith // and when // strengthen I have : Zec 3:2-4; Joh 14:19, Joh 17:9-11, Joh 17:15-21; Rom 5:9, Rom 5:10, Rom 8:32, Rom 8:34; Heb 7:25; 1Pe 1:5; 1Jo 2:1, 1Jo 2:2 thy faith : Luk 8...

TSK: Luk 22:33 - I am I am : 2Ki 8:12, 2Ki 8:13; Pro 28:26; Jer 10:23, Jer 17:9; Mat 20:22, Mat 26:33-35, Mat 26:40,Mat 26:41; Mar 14:29, Mar 14:31, Mar 14:37, Mar 14:38; J...

TSK: Luk 22:34 - the cock the cock : Mat 26:34, Mat 26:74; Mar 14:30,Mar 14:71, Mar 14:72; Joh 13:38, Joh 18:27

TSK: Luk 22:35 - When // lacked When : Luk 9:3, Luk 10:4; Mat 10:9, Mat 10:10; Mar 6:8, Mar 6:9 lacked : Luk 12:29-31; Gen 48:15; Deu 8:2, Deu 8:3, Deu 8:16; Psa 23:1, Psa 34:9, Psa ...

TSK: Luk 22:36 - But But : Mat 10:22-25; Joh 15:20, Joh 16:33; 1Th 2:14, 1Th 2:15, 1Th 3:4; 1Pe 4:1

TSK: Luk 22:37 - this // And he this : Luk 22:22, Luk 18:31, Luk 24:44-46; Mat 26:54-56; Joh 10:35, Joh 19:28-30; Act 13:27-29 And he : Luk 23:32; Isa 53:12; Mar 15:27, Mar 15:28; 2C...

TSK: Luk 22:38 - It It : Mat 26:52-54; Joh 18:36; 2Co 10:3, 2Co 10:4; Eph 6:10-18; 1Th 5:8; 1Pe 5:9

TSK: Luk 22:39 - he came // as he came : Mat 26:36-38; Mar 14:32-34; Joh 18:1, Joh 18:2 as : Luk 21:37; Mar 11:11, Mar 11:19, Mar 13:3

TSK: Luk 22:40 - Pray Pray : Luk 22:46, Luk 11:4; 1Ch 4:10; Psa 17:5, Psa 19:13, Psa 119:116, Psa 119:117, Psa 119:133; Pro 30:8, Pro 30:9; Mat 6:13, Mat 26:41; Mar 14:38; ...

TSK: Luk 22:41 - and kneeled and kneeled : Mat 26:39; Mar 14:35

and kneeled : Mat 26:39; Mar 14:35

TSK: Luk 22:42 - Father // willing, remove // cup // not Father : Mat 26:42, Mat 26:44; Mar 14:36; Joh 12:27, Joh 12:28 willing, remove : Gr. willing to remove cup : Luk 22:17-20; Isa 51:17, Isa 51:22; Jer 2...

TSK: Luk 22:43 - an // strengthening an : Luk 4:10,Luk 4:11; Psa 91:11, Psa 91:12; Mat 4:6, Mat 4:11, Mat 26:53; 1Ti 3:16; Heb 1:6, Heb 1:14 strengthening : Luk 22:32; Deu 3:28; Job 4:3, ...

TSK: Luk 22:44 - being // his being : Gen 32:24-28; Psa 22:1, Psa 22:2, Psa 22:12-21, Psa 40:1-3, Psa 69:14-18, 88:1-18, Psa 130:1, Psa 130:2; Psa 143:6, Psa 143:7; Lam 1:12, Lam 3...

TSK: Luk 22:45 - sleeping sleeping : Mat 26:40,Mat 26:43; Mar 14:37, Mar 14:40,Mar 14:41

TSK: Luk 22:46 - Why sleep ye Why sleep ye : Luk 22:40, Luk 21:34-36; Pro 6:4-11; Jon 1:6

TSK: Luk 22:47 - while // Judas while : Mat 26:45-47; Mar 14:41-43; Joh 18:2-9 Judas : Luk 22:3-6; Mat 26:14-16, Mat 26:47; Mar 14:10,Mar 14:43; Act 1:16-18

TSK: Luk 22:48 - betrayest betrayest : 2Sa 20:9, 2Sa 20:10; Psa 55:21; Pro 27:6; Mat 26:48-50; Mar 14:44-46

TSK: Luk 22:50 - -- Mat 26:51-54; Mar 14:47; Joh 18:10,Joh 18:11; Rom 12:19; 2Co 10:4

TSK: Luk 22:51 - Suffer // And he Suffer : Joh 17:12, Joh 18:8, Joh 18:9 And he : Rom 12:21; 2Co 10:1; 1Pe 2:21-23

TSK: Luk 22:52 - Jesus // captains Jesus : Mat 26:55; Mar 14:48, Mar 14:49 captains : Luk 22:4; 2Ki 11:15; Joh 17:12; Act 5:26

TSK: Luk 22:53 - I was // but // the power I was : Luk 21:37, Luk 21:38; Mat 21:12-15, Mat 21:23, Mat 21:45, Mat 21:46; Joh 7:25, Joh 7:26, Joh 7:30,Joh 7:45 but : Jdg 16:21-30; Job 20:5; Joh 1...

TSK: Luk 22:54 - took // And Peter took : Our blessed Lord before his death passed another examination. One was before the Jewish Sanhedrim, whose proper province it was to try such as ...

took : Our blessed Lord before his death passed another examination. One was before the Jewish Sanhedrim, whose proper province it was to try such as were accused as false prophets or blasphemers. This was a kind of ecclesiastical court. The other, with which the next chapter opens, was before Pilate, the Roman governor of Judea at that time; he principally took cognizance of criminal things, such especially as concerned the peace of the country, considered as part of the Roman empire. Mat 26:57, Mat 26:58; Mar 14:53, Mar 14:54; Joh 18:12-17, Joh 18:24

And Peter : Luk 22:33, Luk 22:34; 2Ch 32:31

TSK: Luk 22:55 - had // Peter had : Luk 22:44; Mat 26:69; Mar 14:66; Joh 18:17, Joh 18:18 Peter : Psa 1:1, Psa 26:4, Psa 26:5, Psa 28:3; Pro 9:6, Pro 13:20; 1Co 15:33; 2Co 6:15-17

TSK: Luk 22:56 - a certain maid a certain maid : Mat 26:69; Mar 14:6, Mar 14:17, Mar 14:66-68; Joh 18:17

TSK: Luk 22:57 - he denied he denied : Luk 22:33, Luk 22:34, Luk 12:9; Mat 10:33, Mat 26:70; Joh 18:25, Joh 18:27; Act 3:13, Act 3:14, Act 3:19; 2Ti 2:10-12; 1Jo 1:9

TSK: Luk 22:58 - another another : A maid challenged Peter in the second instance, according to Matthew and Mark; yet here it is said ετερος [Strong’ s G2087], a...

another : A maid challenged Peter in the second instance, according to Matthew and Mark; yet here it is said ετερος [Strong’ s G2087], another (man) and he also answers to a man. But ετερος [Strong’ s G2087], as Wetstein shows, may be, and is in innumerable instances applied to a female; and Matthew says, ""she said to them that were there,""and Mark, ""she began to say to them that stood by.""So that the maid gave the information to those around her, and some man charged Peter with it. Probably several joined in the accusation, though he answered to an individual, for John says, ""They said unto him,""etc. Mat 26:71, Mat 26:72; Mar 14:69, Mar 14:70; Joh 18:25

TSK: Luk 22:59 - confidently confidently : Mat 26:73, Mat 26:74; Mar 14:69, Mar 14:70; Joh 18:26, Joh 18:27

TSK: Luk 22:60 - the cock the cock : Luk 22:34; Mat 26:74, Mat 26:75; Mar 14:71, Mar 14:72; Joh 18:27

TSK: Luk 22:61 - turned // looked // And Peter // Before turned : Luk 10:41; Mar 5:30 looked : Job 33:27; Isa 57:15-18; Jer 31:18-20; Hos 11:8; Act 5:31 And Peter : Eze 16:63, Eze 36:31, Eze 36:32; Eph 2:11;...

TSK: Luk 22:62 - and wept and wept : Psa 38:18, Psa 126:5, Psa 126:6, Psa 130:1-4, Psa 143:1-4; Jer 31:18; Eze 7:16; Zec 12:10; Mat 5:4, Mat 26:75; Mar 14:72; 1Co 10:12; 2Co 7:...

TSK: Luk 22:63 - the men // mocked the men : Mat 26:59-68; Mar 14:55-65; Joh 18:22 mocked : Job 16:9, Job 16:10, Job 30:9-14; Psa 22:6, Psa 22:7, Psa 22:13, Psa 35:15, Psa 35:16, Psa 35...

TSK: Luk 22:64 - blindfolded blindfolded : Jdg 16:21, Jdg 16:25

blindfolded : Jdg 16:21, Jdg 16:25

TSK: Luk 22:65 - blasphemously blasphemously : Luk 12:10; Mat 12:31, Mat 12:32; Act 26:11; 1Ti 1:13, 1Ti 1:14

TSK: Luk 22:66 - as soon // elders as soon : Mat 27:1; Mar 15:1 elders : Psa 2:1-3; Act 4:25-28, Act 22:5

TSK: Luk 22:67 - Art // If Art : Mat 11:3-5, Mat 26:63-68; Mar 14:61-66; Joh 10:24 If : Luk 16:31; Joh 5:39-47, Joh 8:43-45, Joh 9:27, Joh 9:28, Joh 10:25, Joh 10:26, Joh 12:37-...

TSK: Luk 22:68 - -- Luk 20:3-7, Luk 20:41-44

TSK: Luk 22:69 - shall // on shall : Mat 26:64; Mar 14:62 on : Psa 110:1; Dan 7:13, Dan 7:14; Mat 22:44; Mar 16:19; Act 2:34-36, Act 7:55, Act 7:56; Rom 8:34; Eph 1:20-23, Eph 4:8...

TSK: Luk 22:70 - the Son // Ye say the Son : Luk 4:41; Psa 2:7, Psa 2:12; Mat 3:17, Mat 27:43, Mat 27:54; Joh 1:34, Joh 1:49, Joh 10:30,Joh 10:36, Joh 19:7 Ye say : Luk 23:3; Mat 26:64;...

TSK: Luk 22:71 - -- Mat 26:65, Mat 26:66; Mar 14:63, Mar 14:64

kecilkan semua
Tafsiran/Catatan -- Catatan Kata/Frasa (per Ayat)

Poole: Luk 22:1 - -- Luk 22:1,2 The chief priests and scribes conspire against Christ. Luk 22:3-6 Judas covenants to betray him. Luk 22:7-18 The apostles sent to p...

Luk 22:1,2 The chief priests and scribes conspire against Christ.

Luk 22:3-6 Judas covenants to betray him.

Luk 22:7-18 The apostles sent to prepare the passover: Christ

eateth it with them,

Luk 22:19,20 and institutes his last supper.

Luk 22:21-23 He covertly points out the traitor,

Luk 22:24-30 cheeks the ambitious strife of his disciples, and

promises them a share in his kingdom.

Luk 22:31-34 He telleth Peter of Satan’ s desire to sift him; but

that his faith should be supported; and yet he

should thrice deny him.

Luk 22:35-38 He advises his disciples to provide necessaries and

a sword.

Luk 22:39-46 His agony and prayer in the garden.

Luk 22:47-49 He is betrayed,

Luk 22:50-53 healeth a servant of the high priest, whose ear was

cut off,

Luk 22:54-62 is lead to the high priest’ s house; Peter thrice

denieth him.

Luk 22:63-65 Christ is scornfully used,

Luk 22:66-71 and brought before the council, where, confessing

himself to be the Son of God, he is pronounced

guilty of blasphemy.

Ver. 1,2. See Poole on "Mat 26:1" and following verses to Mat 26:5 , See Poole on "Mar 14:1" , See Poole on "Mar 14:2" .

Poole: Luk 22:3-14 - -- Ver. 3-14. See Poole on "Mat 26:14" , and following verses to Mat 26:19 . See Poole on "Mar 14:10" , and following verses to Mar 14:16 .

Ver. 3-14. See Poole on "Mat 26:14" , and following verses to Mat 26:19 . See Poole on "Mar 14:10" , and following verses to Mar 14:16 .

Poole: Luk 22:15-23 - -- Ver. 15-23. See Poole on "Mat 26:20" , and following verses to Mat 26:30 , where is opened whatsoever Luke hath that is not in the other evangelists...

Ver. 15-23. See Poole on "Mat 26:20" , and following verses to Mat 26:30 , where is opened whatsoever Luke hath that is not in the other evangelists.

Poole: Luk 22:24 - -- Luke only taketh notice of this strife at the time of their being in the guest chamber. Such a strife we read of, Mat 18:1 20:25,26 Mr 9:33 and in ...

Luke only taketh notice of this strife at the time of their being in the guest chamber. Such a strife we read of, Mat 18:1 20:25,26 Mr 9:33 and in this Gospel, Luk 9:46 ; by which it is apparent, that they had been more than once arguing this point. But yet most interpreters think that it is here placed by Luke out of order and some translate egeneto in this text, there had been, not, there was; and indeed we can hardly think so uncharitably of the apostles, as to imagine of them, that immediately after their receiving, first the passover, then the Lord’ s supper, their thoughts should be taken up with things of this nature, much less that they should discourse of any such subjects as these; especially also considering what our Saviour had told them, that he was betrayed into the hands of sinners. Something of our Saviour’ s answer, pressing upon them brotherly love, and mutual serviceableness each to other, was very proper to this time, which our Saviour (though spoken before) might at this time repeat, and Luke prefactorily to it might take notice of this contest in this place.

Poole: Luk 22:25-27 - -- Ver. 25-27. See Poole on "Mat 20:25" , and following verses to Mat 20:28 . The sum is, our Saviour hereby teacheth all his disciples (his ministers ...

Ver. 25-27. See Poole on "Mat 20:25" , and following verses to Mat 20:28 . The sum is, our Saviour hereby teacheth all his disciples (his ministers especially) to avoid affectation of rule and dominion, as that which became heathens rather than Christians, and the kings of the Gentiles rather than the ministers of the Lord Jesus Christ. This text giveth no countenance to the levelling of all orders of men. Magistracy is an ordinance of God, and ought to be upheld. Order also in the church is to be observed, for God is the God of order; but no minister of Christ ought to affect great titles, nor to exercise a dominion or lordship. Our work is to feed the flock of God, taking the oversight of them, not by constraint, but willingly; not for filthy lucre, but of a ready mind; neither as being lords over God’ s heritage, but being ensamples to the flock, 1Pe 5:2,3 . Not for that we have dominion, over your faith, but are helpers of your joy, 2Co 1:24 . That the ministers of Christ may not have titles given them, speaking honour and reverence due to them, I do not know. But the reason is obvious why they should not affect them to be fond of them; for pride is a vain and vicious affection, and more culpable in them than others. Their works are but a ministration to the church, in putting the laws of Christ relating to it in execution, and it is their greatest honour to be humble. Nor doth this at all degrade a minister of Christ, for even Christ himself, while he was upon the earth, was not as one that sat at meat, but as one that served.

Poole: Luk 22:28-30 - -- Ver. 28-30. These verses seem to contain (though in a few more words) the substance of what we met with Mat 19:28 . There they are spoken as an answe...

Ver. 28-30. These verses seem to contain (though in a few more words) the substance of what we met with Mat 19:28 . There they are spoken as an answer to Peter, speaking on the behalf of himself and the rest of the apostles, who had forsaken all to follow Christ. Christ tells them there, that those which had followed him, in the regeneration when the Son of man should sit on the throne of his glory, should sit upon twelve thrones, judging the twelve tribes of Israel. That time which our Lord there calleth the regeneration, is the time when he had been giving a new birth to the church, reforming the world by his doctrine and holy example. That time he here calleth the time of his temptations, by which he meaneth trials, afflictions, and persecutions, as the word is often taken in holy writ, Gal 4:14 Jam 1:12 2Pe 2:9 Rev 3:10 .

To those of the disciples (they were eleven of the twelve) he promises a kingdom a state of great honour and dignity, as his Father had appointed him; and therefore they might satisfy themselves with the titles and qualities of ministers and servants while they were here, and be content to meet with troubles and temptations, as he had done, to hunger and thirst, &c.; when that time came which he had appointed, they should then eat and drink at his table, they should sit also upon thrones, judging the twelve tribes of Israel. Terms expressive of that rest and satisfaction, that glory, honour, and dignity, which the saints in God shall in heaven be possessed of.

Poole: Luk 22:31-32 - But // And when thou art converted, strengthen thy brethren Ver. 31,32. Our Lord directeth his speech to Peter, as one who (as it will by and by appear) had a greater confidence of himself than the rest expres...

Ver. 31,32. Our Lord directeth his speech to Peter, as one who (as it will by and by appear) had a greater confidence of himself than the rest expressed, and as one who he foresaw would fall more foully than the rest; though it appears, that in his speech he had a respect to them all, for the word you is in the plural number. The devil had a mind to disturb them all by his temptations (that is here called sifting). Christ hath his fan in his hand, and will sift his church, but his sifting is to purge his floor; he sifts a particular soul, to purify it from its lusts and corruptions; but Satan sifts the soul and the church merely to give them trouble, and to keep them from rest and quiet by continual motion and agitation. This we are all concerned to take notice of, that we may both be continually prepared for the time of our siftings, and bless God who doth not satisfy Satan’ s desires to sift his; for he hath the same mind to winnow us now, that he had to sift Peter and the rest of the apostles.

But (saith our Saviour) I have prayed that thy faith fail not There is a total and a partial failing of faith. Peter’ s faith did fail in part; but the seed of God did yet abide in him, his faith did not wholly fail: so will it be with the faith of every true disciple of Christ. In hours of great temptation and trial, their faith may, as to some degrees, fail, but totally it shall not: they may be perverted, but they shall again be converted. As the apostles saith of the bodies of the saints, Rom 8:10,11 , And if Christ be in you, the body is dead because of sin; but the Spirit is life because of righteousness. But if the Spirit of him that raised up Jesus from the dead dwell in you, he that raised up Christ from the dead shall also quicken your mortal bodies by his Spirit that dwelleth in you: may also be said of their souls. They have in them a body of death, and they may in act hour of great temptations fail, and their gracious habits may seem to die. But if the Spirit of God dwelleth in the soul, he will again quicken their souls by his Spirit which dwelleth in them.

And when thou art converted, strengthen thy brethren that is, when God hath recovered thee from thy fall, and made thee to see thy error, make an improvement of thy recovery out of the snare of the devil, by admonishing others to take heed of too much confidence in themselves, and encouraging them not to despair, though they also may fall into temptation; but that the grace of God shall be sufficient for them.

Poole: Luk 22:33-34 - -- Ver. 33,34. This is more largely recorded by Mat 26:33-35 , and by Mar 14:27-30 .

Ver. 33,34. This is more largely recorded by Mat 26:33-35 , and by Mar 14:27-30 .

Poole: Luk 22:35-38 - the things concerning Ver. 35-38. Those who interpret Luk 22:35,36 , as a precept of our Saviour’ s imposing a duty upon his disciples, or a counsel concerning the pr...

Ver. 35-38. Those who interpret Luk 22:35,36 , as a precept of our Saviour’ s imposing a duty upon his disciples, or a counsel concerning the proviting arms which they might use for the protection and defence of themselves, will not only find a difficulty to reconcile their notion of it to several other precepts, and the will of God declared by the apostles’ practice, who never went about by force and arms to defend themselves in the first plantation and propagation of the gospel; but also to reconcile it to the last words of our Saviour, who said, when his disciples told him they had two swords, It is enough; which he would never have said, if he had intended any such thing; for two swords was much too little to have conquered that multitude of adversaries which the disciples of Christ were to meet with. Our Saviour doth doubtless speak in a figure, and all that he intends amounts but to this: Hitherto I have been with you, and you have had my special protection; though you went out without a purse or a scrip, yet you have wanted nothing; though you went without a sword, yet none did you any harm. But the time is now come, when the posture of your affairs will be much altered; your friends will be few, your enemies many, therefore you stand concerned to make as good preparation as you can do in those things that are consistent with the general precepts that I have given you. The tragedy will begin with me; for what is written of me must now be accomplished, Isa 53:12 , He was numbered with the transgressors. I must be brought before magistrates as a common malefactor, and hanged on a cross between two thieves. And

the things concerning me shall shortly have an end: you will next come upon the stage, and therefore prepare what in you lieth for the performance of your part.

Poole: Luk 22:39 - -- Both Matthew and Mark say, he went to a place called Gethsemane; but that makes no difference, for whether Gethsemane signifieth a village, or ...

Both Matthew and Mark say, he went to a place called Gethsemane; but that makes no difference, for whether Gethsemane signifieth a village, or a garden, or a valley, all agree it was at the foot of the mount of Olives. It was a place to which our Saviour had used to go ever since he came to Jerusalem, and lay in his way to Bethany. He went thither to pray, and his disciples followed him.

Poole: Luk 22:40 - Pray that ye enter not into temptation When he came to the mount of Olives, he first setteth his disciples to that work, which at this day was proper for them. Pray that ye enter not int...

When he came to the mount of Olives, he first setteth his disciples to that work, which at this day was proper for them.

Pray that ye enter not into temptation that, if it be the will of God, you may be delivered from such an hour of trial as I am entering into; or, at least, that you may not be overcome by it. That my trials which you will presently be witnesses unto, and your own which you shall hereafter meet with, may have no power upon you to withdraw you from your work in the publication or profession of my gospel. The other two evangelists make mention of our Saviour’ s taking Peter, and James, and John with him, yet more privately. Luke mentions not that, but goeth on.

Poole: Luk 22:41 - -- Whether from the eight, or from Peter, James, and John also, the evangelist doth not tell us; but some are of opinion, that he took the three discip...

Whether from the eight, or from Peter, James, and John also, the evangelist doth not tell us; but some are of opinion, that he took the three disciples along to join with him in prayer, from whom some account might be given of the substance of his prayer, which followeth. I rather think he was alone.

Poole: Luk 22:42 - -- We have a larger account given us of our Saviour’ s prayer, See Poole on "Mat 26:39" , and following verses to Mat 26:46 . See Poole on "Mar ...

We have a larger account given us of our Saviour’ s prayer, See Poole on "Mat 26:39" , and following verses to Mat 26:46 . See Poole on "Mar 14:35" , and following verses to Mar 14:42 .

Poole: Luk 22:43-44 - -- Ver. 43,44. We have formerly opened these verses in Mat 26:44-46 , where we took them in, as being a part of the history of our Saviour’ s prayi...

Ver. 43,44. We have formerly opened these verses in Mat 26:44-46 , where we took them in, as being a part of the history of our Saviour’ s praying before his passion.

Poole: Luk 22:45-46 - -- Ver. 45,46. The relations which Matthew and Mark give us are both more particular than that given us by Luke, to which we refer the reader. Luke spea...

Ver. 45,46. The relations which Matthew and Mark give us are both more particular than that given us by Luke, to which we refer the reader. Luke speaketh but of his praying once; Matthew saith he prayed thrice. Luke mentions nothing of his withdrawing with Peter, James, and John from the other eight; Matthew and Mark both mention it. Luke maketh mention of an angel’ s appearing to him, of the agony in which he was, and his sweating drops as it were of blood; which neither Matthew nor Mark take notice of: yet we must not think, that either any one of the evangelists, or all of them together, give a perfect account of all the words our Saviour used in these prayers, only they tell us the sum of them in different words; but See Poole on "Mat 26:40" , and following verses to Mat 26:41 . See Poole on "Mar 14:37" , and following verses to Mar 14:38 , where we have fully considered whatsoever is said by any of the evangelists upon this argument.

Poole: Luk 22:47-48 - -- Ver. 47,48. See Poole on "Mat 26:47" , and following verses to Mat 26:49 . See Poole on "Mar 14:43" , and following verses to Mar 14:45 .

Ver. 47,48. See Poole on "Mat 26:47" , and following verses to Mat 26:49 . See Poole on "Mar 14:43" , and following verses to Mar 14:45 .

Poole: Luk 22:49-51 - -- Ver. 49-51. No other evangelist but John hath this passage perfect. What he hath we have opened in our notes on Mat 26:51,52 , because it tendeth to ...

Ver. 49-51. No other evangelist but John hath this passage perfect. What he hath we have opened in our notes on Mat 26:51,52 , because it tendeth to complete that part of the history there discoursed, concerning Christ’ s being apprehended. John relates it with more circumstances, telling us that it was Peter who drew the sword, and that his name whose ear was cut off was Malchus, and relates some further words used by our Saviour to Peter, which we shall further consider in their places. This rash act of Peter might have cost him dear, for it made a kinsman of Malchus take such notice of him, as he was very near being accused by him, Joh 18:26 . Swords are dangerous things for us to use, until God puts them into our hands. Peter ought not only to have asked his Master if he should smite with the sword, but also to have staid his hand till Christ had given him an answer.

Poole: Luk 22:52-53 - -- Ver. 52,53. See Poole on "Mat 26:55" . See Poole on "Mar 14:48" . See Poole on "Mar 14:49" . It speaketh a great degree of rage and malice against...

Ver. 52,53. See Poole on "Mat 26:55" . See Poole on "Mar 14:48" . See Poole on "Mar 14:49" . It speaketh a great degree of rage and malice against our Saviour, that so great men, as the chief of the priests and the elders, should come out at midnight, in the company of the officers and soldiers, to apprehend Christ. From these verses it appeareth that some of them were there in the height of their zeal.

Poole: Luk 22:54-62 - -- Ver. 54-62. The whole history of Peter’ s denial of his Master, and of his repentance. See Poole on "Mat 26:69" , and following verses to Mat 2...

Ver. 54-62. The whole history of Peter’ s denial of his Master, and of his repentance. See Poole on "Mat 26:69" , and following verses to Mat 26:75 , where we have opened what passages relating to it are in Mark or this evangelist.

Poole: Luk 22:63-65 - -- Ver. 63-65. Concerning these abuses offered to our Saviour. See Poole on "Mat 26:67" . See Poole on "Mat 26:68" . See Poole on "Mar 14:65" .

Ver. 63-65. Concerning these abuses offered to our Saviour. See Poole on "Mat 26:67" . See Poole on "Mat 26:68" . See Poole on "Mar 14:65" .

Poole: Luk 22:66-71 - See Poole on "Mat 26:57" Ver. 66-71. Our blessed Lord before his death passed two trials or examinations. The one before the Jewish sanhedrim, whose proper province it was to...

Ver. 66-71. Our blessed Lord before his death passed two trials or examinations. The one before the Jewish sanhedrim, whose proper province it was to try such as were accused as false prophets, or blasphemers. This was a kind of ecclesiastical court. The high priest was the chief judge in it, and we are told that they used to sit in his palace. The other was before Pilate, the Roman governor of Judea at that time; he principally took cognizance of criminal things, such especially as concerned the peace of the country, considered as a part of the Roman empire. These verses give an account only of the former. Blasphemy was the crime they charged upon him. We cannot from any one evangelist have a full account of either of them.

See Poole on "Mat 26:57" and following verses to Mat 26:68 , when have fully considered what all the evangelists say.

Lightfoot: Luk 22:4 - And captains And he went his way, and communed with the chief priests and captains, how he might betray him unto them.   [And captains.] They are call...

And he went his way, and communed with the chief priests and captains, how he might betray him unto them.   

[And captains.] They are called, Luk 22:52, captains of the Temple; and in the singular number, the captain of the Temple; Act 4:1; but who should this or these be?  

I. All know that there was a Roman garrison in the castle of Antonia, whose charge especially was to suppress all tumults and seditions in the Temple: but was the tribune, or the centurions of that garrison called by the name of the captains of the Temple? Surely rather the captains of the castle of Antonia. And indeed it appears not that the Roman captains had conspired against the life of Christ, that Judas should betake himself to them to make a bargain for the betraying of him.  

II. The conjecture might be more probable of those rulers in the Temple, concerning whom we have this mention: "These are the rulers that were in the Temple: Jochanan Ben Phineas, governor of the seals; Ahijah, set over the drink-offerings: Matthiah Ben Samuel, that presided over the lots," etc. But to me it seems beyond all doubt that the captains of the Temple were the captains of the several watches. "In three places the priests kept watch and ward in the Temple, viz. in Beth Abtines, Beth Nitsots, and Beth Mokad. The Levites also in one-and-twenty places more." Whereas, therefore, these watches or guards consisted every one of several persons, there was one single person set over each of them as their captain, or the head of that watch. And this way looks that of Pilate, Mat 27:65; ye have a watch of your own; let some of them be sent to guard the sepulchre.  

III. The captain of the Temple; therefore, distinctively and by way of eminence so termed, I would suppose him, whom they called the ruler of the mountain of the house; who was the chief of all the heads of those wards. " The ruler of the mountain of the Temple takes his walks through every watch with torches lighted before him: and if he found any upon the watch that might not be standing on his feet, he said, 'Peace be with thee!' But if he found him sleeping, he struck him with a stick; and it was warrantable for him to burn the garments of such a one. And when it was said by others, 'What is that noise in the court?' the answer was made, 'It is the noise of a Levite under correction, and whose garments are burning, for that he slept upon the watch.' R. Eliezer Ben Jacob said, 'They once found my mother's son asleep, and they burnt his clothes.' " Compare this passage with Rev 16:15; "Behold I come as a thief; blessed is he that watcheth, and keepeth his garments, lest he walk naked, and they see his shame."  

It is easy distinguishing this captain of the mountain of the Temple from the ruler of the Temple or the sagan. The former presided only over the guards; the latter over the whole service of the Temple. And so we have them distinguished, Act 4:1; there is the captain of the Temple; and Annas, who was the sagan.

Lightfoot: Luk 22:19 - This is my body And he took bread, and gave thanks, and brake it; and gave unto them, saying, This is my body which is given for you: this do in remembrance o...

And he took bread, and gave thanks, and brake it; and gave unto them, saying, This is my body which is given for you: this do in remembrance of me.   

[This is my body.] The words of the institution of the holy eucharist throughout the whole contain a reflection, partly by way of antithesis, partly by way of allusion.  

I. This is my body. Upon the account of their present celebration of the Passover, these words might very well have some reference to the body of the Paschal lamb: the body (I say) of the Paschal lamb. For the Jews use this very phrase concerning it: "They bring in a table spread, on which are bitter herbs, with other herbs, unleavened bread, pottage, and the body of the Paschal Lamb." And a little after: he eateth of the body of the Passover. From whence our Saviour's meaning may be well enough discerned; viz. That by the same signification that the Paschal lamb was my body hitherto, from henceforward let this bread be my body.  

II. Which is given for you. But the apostle adds, "Which is broken for you": which, indeed, doth not so well agree with the Paschal lamb as with the lamb for the daily sacrifice. For as to the Paschal lamb, there was not a bone of it broken; but that of the daily sacrifice was broken and cut into several parts; and yet they are both of them the body of Christ in a figure. And although, besides the breaking of it, there are these further instances wherein the Paschal lamb and that of the daily sacrifice did differ, viz., 1. that the daily sacrifice was for all Israel, but the Paschal for this or that family: 2. the daily sacrifice was for the atonement of sin; the Passover not so: 3. the daily sacrifice was burnt, but the Passover eaten: yet in this they agreed, that under both the body of our Saviour was figured and shadowed out, though in a different notion.  

III. This do in remembrance of me. As you kept the Passover in remembrance of your going out of Egypt. "Thou shalt remember the day of thy going out of Egypt all the days of thy life. Ben Zuma thus explains it; The days of thy life, that is, in the day time: all the days of thy life, that is, in the night time too. But the wise men say, The days of thy life, that is, in this age: all the days of thy life, that the days of the Messiah may be included too." But whereas, in the days of the Messiah there was a greater and more illustrious redemption and deliverance than that out of Egypt brought about; with the Jews' good leave, it is highly requisite, that both the thing itself and he that accomplished it should be remembered. We suspect in our notes upon 1 Corinthians_11, as if some of the Corinthians, in their very participation of the holy eucharist, did so far Judaize, that what had been instituted for the commemoration of their redemption by the death of Christ, they perverted to the commemoration of the going out of Egypt; and that they did not at all 'discern the Lord's body' in the sacrament.  

Under the law there were several eatings of holy things. The first was that which Siphra mentions, when the priests eat of the sacrifice, and atonement is made for him that brings it. There were other eatings, viz., of the festival sacrifices of the tenths, thanksgiving-offerings, etc., which were to be eaten by those that brought them; but these all now have their period: and now, Do ye this; and do it in remembrance of me.  

IV. This cup...which is shed for you. This seems to have reference to that cup of wine that was every day poured out in the drink offerings with the daily sacrifice; for that also was poured out for the remission of sins. So that the bread may have reference to the body of the daily sacrifice, and the cup to the wine of the drink offering.  

V. My blood of the new testament. So St. Matthew and St. Mark with reference to "the blood of bulls and of goats," with which the old testament was confirmed, Exodus_24; Heb 9:19.  

VI. The new testament in my blood. So our evangelist and so the apostle, 1 Corinthians_11 with reference to the whole ministry of the altar, where blood was poured out; nay, with respect to the whole Jewish religion, for here was the beginning or entry of the new covenant. And indeed it seems that the design of that frequent communion of the Lord's supper in the first ages of the church, among other things, was, that those who were converted from Judaism might be sealed and confirmed against Judaism; the sacrament itself being the mark of the cessation of the old testament and the beginning of the new.

Lightfoot: Luk 22:21 - But, behold, the hand of him that betrayeth me, etc. But, behold, the hand of him that betrayeth me is with me on the table.   [But, behold, the hand of him that betrayeth me, etc.] What...

But, behold, the hand of him that betrayeth me is with me on the table.   

[But, behold, the hand of him that betrayeth me, etc.] What can be desired more as a demonstration that Judas was present at the eucharist? And whereas the contrary is endeavoured to be proved out of John_13, nothing is made out of nothing: for there is not only syllable throughout the whole chapter of the paschal supper, but of a supper before the 'feast of the Passover.'

Lightfoot: Luk 22:26 - As the younger But ye shall not be so: but he that is greatest among you, let him be as the younger; and he that is chief, as he that doth serve.   [...

But ye shall not be so: but he that is greatest among you, let him be as the younger; and he that is chief, as he that doth serve.   

[As the younger.] The vulgar and interlinear, sicut junior. We, as the younger; very well. For, as Beza hath it upon the place, it is properly to be understood of age. I ask therefore,  

I. Whether Peter was not the oldest of the whole company? What reason can any have to deny this? It was necessary that some one of them should be the first both in number and order; and it was as fit and equal that the oldest amongst them should be reckoned the first. And who will you say was older than Peter? Hence was it that he had the first place in the catalogue of the apostles, because he was the oldest. For this reason he sat at table in the uppermost place next our Lord: for this reason did our Saviour so often direct his discourse so immediately to him: and for this reason were his answers to Christ taken in the name of all the rest, viz., because the oldest. Which brings to mind the interpreter of the doctor in the school of the Rabbins, who was the interlocutor between the master and the disciples, and for that reason the chief in the school, but without any primacy. Whereas therefore St. Peter, after our Saviour's ascension into heaven, was (to speak vulgarly) the prolocutor in that sacred college, what more probable reason can be offered why he was so, than this seniority? Were not others as capable as speaking as he? had they not equal authority, zeal, faith, knowledge with him, etc.? but he indeed was the eldest man.  

II. I cannot therefore but suspect from the proper signification of the word younger; (to which the greater; respecting age, does answer) that some one amongst them had been challenging some privilege and primacy to himself upon the account of seniority: and unless any can make it out that there was somebody older than Peter, pardon me, if I think that he was the chief in this contention, and that it was chiefly moved betwixt himself and the two sons of Zebedee. For it seems unlikely that the other nine would have contended for the primacy with Peter, James, and John; whom Christ had so peculiarly distinguished in their presence with marks of his favour. So that the struggle seems to be especially between these three and Peter the beginner of the strife: which appears, partly in that our Saviour rebukes him by name, and partly in that he could not forget without some grudge, that request of the two brothers, "Lord, let us sit one on thy right hand the other on thy left."

Lightfoot: Luk 22:31 - Simon, Simon And the Lord said, Simon, Simon, behold, Satan hath desired to have you, that he may sift you as wheat.   [Simon, Simon.] Let us ch...

And the Lord said, Simon, Simon, behold, Satan hath desired to have you, that he may sift you as wheat.   

[Simon, Simon.] Let us change the name and person: "Thomas, Thomas"; or "Philip, Philip, Satan hath desired, etc.; but I have prayed," etc. And who would from hence have picked out an argument for the primacy of Thomas or Philip over the rest of the apostles and the universal church? And yet this do the Romanists in the behalf of Peter. Who would not have taken it rather as a severe chiding? As if he should have said, "Thou, Thomas or Philip, art thou so hot in contending for the primacy, while Satan is so hot against all of you? And whilst you are at strife amongst yourselves, he is at strife against you all!" Under such a notion as this I doubt not our Saviour did speak to Peter, and that in these words he found a severe reprimand rather than any promotion to the primacy.

Lightfoot: Luk 22:32 - That thy faith fail not But I have prayed for thee, that thy faith fail not: and when thou art converted, strengthen thy brethren.   [That thy faith fail not.] ...

But I have prayed for thee, that thy faith fail not: and when thou art converted, strengthen thy brethren.   

[That thy faith fail not.] There seems an emphasis in the word faith. As to the other apostles, indeed, that Christian courage and magnanimity which they ought to have exerted in that difficult time did fail them; but their faith was nothing so near shipwreck as Peter's faith was. They indeed deserted their Master and fled, Mar 14:50; which they seem to have not done without some connivance from himself, Joh 18:8. But when Peter renounced and abjured his Lord, how near was he becoming an apostate; and his faith from suffering a total shipwreck? Certainly it was Peter's advantage that Christ prayed for him; but it was not so much for his honour, that he, beyond all others, should stand in need of such a prayer.

Lightfoot: Luk 22:36 - Let him sell his garment, and buy a sword Then said he unto them, But now, he that hath a purse, let him take it; and likewise his scrip: and he that hath no sword, let him sell his g...

Then said he unto them, But now, he that hath a purse, let him take it; and likewise his scrip: and he that hath no sword, let him sell his garment, and buy one.   

[Let him sell his garment, and buy a sword.] Doth our Saviour give them this counsel in good earnest?  

I. He uses the common dialect. For so also the Rabbins in other things: "He that hath not wherewithal to eat, but upon mere alms, let him beg or sell his garments to buy oil and candles for the feast of Dedication," etc.  

II. He warns them of a danger that is very near; and in a common way of speech lets them know that they had more need of providing swords for their defence against the common enemy, than be any way quarrelling amongst themselves. No so much exhorting them to repel force with force, as to give them such an apprehension of the common rage of their enemies against them, that might suppress all private animosities amongst themselves.

Lightfoot: Luk 22:37 - For the things concerning me have an end For I say unto you, that this that is written must yet be accomplished in me, And he was reckoned among the transgressors: for the things concerni...

For I say unto you, that this that is written must yet be accomplished in me, And he was reckoned among the transgressors: for the things concerning me have an end.   

[For the things concerning me have an end.] That is, "My business is done, yours is but beginning. While I was present, the children of the bridechamber had no reason to weep; but when I am taken away, and numbered amongst the transgressors, think what will be done to you, and what ought to be done by you; and then think if this be a time for you to be contending with one another."

Lightfoot: Luk 22:43 - An angel strengthening him And there appeared an angel unto him from heaven, strengthening him.   [An angel strengthening him.] I. In his temptations in the wildern...

And there appeared an angel unto him from heaven, strengthening him.   

[An angel strengthening him.] I. In his temptations in the wilderness there was no angel by him; for St. Matthew saith, Mat 4:11, "Then the devil leaveth him, and, behold, angels came and ministered unto him": that is, not till the devil had first left him. But in the midst of this trial there was an 'angel strengthening him': and why so? By reason of his agony, you will say, and that very truly: but whence arose this agony? And of what kind was it? It was occasioned (you will say) from a sense of divine indignation and wrath. This dare not I say or imagine, that God was angry or conceived any indignation against him at all. And if the anguish and agony of his mind was the result of the divine wrath pressing in upon him, I do not see what kind of comfort an angel could minister against the wrath of God. It is rather an argument God was not angry with him, when he sent an angel to comfort him.  

II. It is not to be doubted, but that Christ was now wrestling with a furious enraged devil; yea, a devil loosed from his chain, and permitted, without any check or restraint from divine providence, to exert all his force and rage against him: which was permitted by God, not from any displeasure against his Son, but that even human nature might, by this her combatant, get a conquest over this insulting enemy. For it had been a small thing to have vanquished the devil by mere divine power.  

III. However therefore it is not here related in express terms, yet could I easily persuade myself, that the devil might at this time appear to our Saviour in some visible shape. When he tempted him in the wilderness, he put on the disguise of some good angel, or rather some kind of resemblance of the Holy Ghost. But in this last temptation he puts on himself, and appears in his own colours; viz. in some direful formidable figure, on purpose to terrify our Lord. And from thence it was that he began to be sore amazed, and to be very heavy; Mar 14:33; and here to be in an agony. Nor do I rashly, and without any ground, suppose this, but upon these reasons:  

I. Whereas that old dragon assaulted the first Adam in a garden in a visible shape; it is not absurd to imagine, he did so now to the second Adam, in a garden, in a visible shape.  

II. This our evangelist tells us concerning his temptation in the wilderness, that "when the devil had ended all the temptation, he departed from him, for a season." Here he takes the season to return; and I see no reason why he should not at this time, as well as in the wilderness, assume some visible shape. Then, indeed, he addressed himself in a charming and grateful shape, to have enticed and deceived him; but now in a frightful and horrid one, to have amazed and terrified him. He had already experienced how vain a thing it was to go about to cheat and allure him: what remained therefore but to shake his mind (if possible) with fright and terror?  

III. For when he had no greater invention in his whole storehouse, by which he could distress and shake the minds of mortals, than the horrid apparition of himself, none will conceive he would neglect this engine, that if it could be, he might disturb his soul through his eye. That, therefore, which the Jews feign or dream about Solomon, that he saw the angel of death (that is, the devil) gnashing his teeth, and that a disciple of Rabbi did so too, I suppose acted in good earnest here; namely, that Christ saw the devil, that old dragon, gaping at him with all horror he could put on. And in this sense would I understand that of the "messenger of Satan buffeting the apostle": viz. that the devil did appear visibly to him in some frightful shape, to afflict and terrify him. And perhaps that vehement desire he had to sift the disciples (Luk 22:31) respects this same thing, namely, that he might be permitted to assault them with such kind of affrightments.

Lightfoot: Luk 22:44 - His sweat was as it were great drops of blood And being in an agony he prayed more earnestly: and his sweat was as it were great drops of blood falling down to the ground.   [His sweat ...

And being in an agony he prayed more earnestly: and his sweat was as it were great drops of blood falling down to the ground.   

[His sweat was as it were great drops of blood.] Diodorus Siculus, speaking of a country where Alexander the Great had to do with Porus, hath this passage; "There are serpents there which, by their bites would occasion most bitter deaths: they are horrible pains that afflict any that are struck by them, and an issue of sweat, like blood, seizeth them." I would ascribe this bloody sweat of our Saviour to the bite of that old serpent, rather than to the apprehension of divine wrath.

Lightfoot: Luk 22:47 - To kiss him And while he yet spake, behold a multitude, and he that was called Judas, one of the twelve, went before them, and drew near unto Jesus to kiss ...

And while he yet spake, behold a multitude, and he that was called Judas, one of the twelve, went before them, and drew near unto Jesus to kiss him.   

[To kiss him.] Our Saviour had to do with a frightful and terrifying devil; but this traitor seems possessed with a tame and gentle one. He converses with the apostles, and there is no token of a devil dwelling in him. He is present at the Passover, at the eucharist, and the very lips of Christ, and still no sign of Satan being his inmate. But when once the devil hath done his work by thee, then, Judas, take heed of thy devil.  

As to this treacherous contrivance of Judas, let us frame the most gentle opinion of it that the matter can bear: for instance, that he might perhaps think with himself, that it was not possible for Christ to be apprehended by the Jews, having already seen him working such stupendous miracles, and more than once strangely delivering himself from them: and grant further, that when he said to them, "Whomsoever I shall kiss; that is he, lay hold of him," he said it scoffingly, as believing they could not be able to lay hold on him: grant we, in a word, that when he saw him condemned, he repented himself, having never suspected that matters would have gone so far, presuming that Christ would easily have made his escape from them, and himself should have got thirty pieces of silver by the bargain: let us grant, I say, that this was his contrivance, and colour it over with as plausible excuses as we can; yet certainly was there never any thing so impiously done by mortal man, than for him thus to play with the Holy of Holies, and endeavour to make merchandise of the Son of God. However, I suspect much worse things hatched in the breast of this traitor: viz. that Christ did really not please him; and, with the great chiefs of that nation, though he supposed him the true Messiah, yet not such a one as answered their carnal expectation.  

The Rabbins distinguish between lawful kisses and kisses of folly; saying, that "all kisses are kisses of folly excepting three": which they there reckon up. But what kind of kiss was this? a kiss of folly? Alas! it is too low and dwarfish a term for this gigantic monster.

Lightfoot: Luk 22:53 - This is your hour, and the power of darkness When I was daily with you in the temple, ye stretched forth no hands against me: but this is your hour, and the power of darkness.   [Thi...

When I was daily with you in the temple, ye stretched forth no hands against me: but this is your hour, and the power of darkness.   

[This is your hour, and the power of darkness.] The serpent himself is now come in Judas; and the seed of the serpent was that rout that came with him, to whom it was fatal to bruise the heel of the Messiah; and now was the hour for that wickedness. It was anciently foretold and predetermined, both as to the thing itself and the instruments; and now all fences lie open, and you may do what you please. The chains of the devil himself are now loosed; and it is permitted to him, without the least check or restraint of Divine Providence, to exert all his furies at pleasure; for now is the power of darkness.  

Darkness; is the devil among the allegorists. "It is said, On the first day of the creation, the angel of death [i.e. the devil] was created, according as it is written, There was darkness upon the face of the deep; that is, the angel of death, who darkeneth the eyes of men."

PBC: Luk 22:28 - -- See Philpot: THE ROAD TO CHRIST’S TABLE AND CHRIST’S THRONE

See Philpot: THE ROAD TO CHRIST’S TABLE AND CHRIST’S THRONE

PBC: Luk 22:31 - -- In middle English (1611 version English) there were distinctions between singular second person and plural second person.  And in New Testament Greek...

In middle English (1611 version English) there were distinctions between singular second person and plural second person.  And in New Testament Greek there is distinct difference between plural and singular, second person pronouns.  Thee in the New Testament is always singular.  It is not that thee, and thou, and thine are some way more respectable or reverential that we would say in our model prayer, " Hallowed be Thy name."  We don’t have to use thee, thou, and thine in our prayers to be heard by God.  But God is one, He’s not multiple.  So we appropriately in King James or biblical language use Thee, Thou, and Thine, the singular second-person pronoun. 

You, in your King James bible, identifies that in the Greek manuscripts of your New Testament, the Greek word underlying the translated word " you" is the plural, second-person pronoun.  Now think about that as we go back and read that passage from Luke.  " Simon, Simon, Satan has desired to have thee – (you individually Peter) that He may sift you individually Peter, as wheat, but I have prayed for you – (all of My disciples) that your (all of your faith) fail not and Peter, my prayer for all of My disciples involves you.  When you have been converted, you need to strengthen the brethren that their faith too fail not.  That’s rich, I love that.  Just look at the thee’s and the you’s as you go through your New Testament and it will enrich your study immensely.

PBC: Luk 22:32 - -- See PB: Ps 32:3 See PBtop: THEE, THOU, THINE, YOU

See PB: Ps 32:3

See PBtop: THEE, THOU, THINE, YOU

PBC: Luk 22:42 - -- The human Will, and the divine Will of our Saviour are, and eternally will be distinct; but his Will as Man is in absolute Subjection to, and in all I...

The human Will, and the divine Will of our Saviour are, and eternally will be distinct; but his Will as Man is in absolute Subjection to, and in all Instances, acts under the Direction of his divine Will. And, therefore, it is not possible that he should ever know Sin. Moral evil can never take place in a Nature which is ineffably united with the Person of the Son of God.

But, since the human Nature of Christ is the Workmanship of the Holy Spirit, and is replenished with all his supernatural Gifts and Graces, and also is in Union with the eternal Son of God, and therefore, his human Will acts in all Things under the Direction of his divine Will; it is absolutely impossible that his human Will, at any Time, or in any instance, should make an unfit and unwise Choice. The supernatural production of our Lord, by the Power of the Holy Spirit, is a clear Proof of the Purity of his Nature, in his Formation. And the super-addition of his Gifts and Graces, and the Subsistence of that holy Nature, in the Person of the Son of God, certainly raise it above a Possibility of Defilement and unfit Acting, for evermore.

John Brine

PBC: Luk 22:61 - -- See PB: Ps 32:3 

See PB: Ps 32:3 

Haydock: Luk 22:3 - And Satan entered into Judas And Satan entered into Judas. The meaning only seems to be, that the devil tempted and overcame him. (Witham) --- Satan entered into Judas not all ...

And Satan entered into Judas. The meaning only seems to be, that the devil tempted and overcame him. (Witham) ---

Satan entered into Judas not all at once, but by degrees. He first gained possession by avarice, next by theft, and lastly he impelled him to the blackest treachery and cruel parricide. The Scripture only says that Satan had entered into him when he was entirely abandoned to iniquity, had hardened his heart against all grace, and shut his ears against every instruction of Jesus. In like manner the Scripture says of a good man, who is strengthened in grace, that the Holy Spirit dwells in him. (Calmet)

Haydock: Luk 22:4 - -- Many even now shudder at the mention of the crime of Judas, and are surprised to think that he could be guilty of such ingratitude, when themselves ar...

Many even now shudder at the mention of the crime of Judas, and are surprised to think that he could be guilty of such ingratitude, when themselves are negligent in avoiding the like crimes. For he who breaks the law of charity and truth, betrays Christ, who is charity and truth, and does it not through any infirmity or ignorance, but designedly and maliciously. (Ven. Bede)

Haydock: Luk 22:15 - With desire I have desired // With a desire have I desired With desire I have desired: literally, with a desire have I desired. [1] The repetition expresseth a great and earnest desire. (Witham) ========...

With desire I have desired: literally, with a desire have I desired. [1] The repetition expresseth a great and earnest desire. (Witham)

===============================

[BIBLIOGRAPHY]

With a desire have I desired. This is commonly reputed a Hebraism, or form of speech peculiar to the Hebrews: hearing, I have heard; seeing, I have seen, &c. But the judicious critic, Mr. Blackwall, has produced parallel expressions out the most exact Greek classics, in his learned book, entitled, The Sacred Classics defended and illustrated; and has clearly proved, by examples, that many forms of speech, called, reputed, and carped at, as Hebraisms, are frequently found in the best Greek classics. (Witham)

Haydock: Luk 22:17 - Taken the chalice Taken the chalice. This is not the chalice of his blood, (the latter is spoken of ver. 20, and 1 Corinthians xi. 25.) but it is the cup which the ma...

Taken the chalice. This is not the chalice of his blood, (the latter is spoken of ver. 20, and 1 Corinthians xi. 25.) but it is the cup which the master of the repast blessed with ceremony, then drank of it, and gave it to all the guests. The modern Jews still observe this custom; not only on the Pasch, but on all other great feasts. The father of the family pours wine into a cup, takes it in his right hand, elevates it, blesses it, tastes, and gives it round to the invited. Our Saviour on this occasion complies with the custom;; and after supper takes the chalice, which he converts into his own blood. (Calmet)

Haydock: Luk 22:18 - I will not drink I will not drink, &c. i.e. from this hour of the supper, to the time of his resurrection, in which he will come in the kingdom of God, he would not t...

I will not drink, &c. i.e. from this hour of the supper, to the time of his resurrection, in which he will come in the kingdom of God, he would not taste wine. For St. Peter testifies, (Acts x. 41.) that he took meat and drink after his resurrection. (Ven. Bede)

Haydock: Luk 22:19 - Do this for a commemoration of me // Which is given THIS IS MY BODY. See the annotations on the same words of consecration, Matthew xxvi. 26.; Mark xiv. 22. and 1 Corinthians xi. 24. --- Do this for a...

THIS IS MY BODY. See the annotations on the same words of consecration, Matthew xxvi. 26.; Mark xiv. 22. and 1 Corinthians xi. 24. ---

Do this for a commemoration of me. By these words he gave a power and precept to them, and their successors, to all bishops and priests, to consecrate and offer up the same; yet so, that they are only the ministers and instruments of Jesus Christ, who instituted this sacrifice, this and all other sacraments, who is the chief and principal Priest, or offerer. It is Christ that chiefly consecrates and changes the elements of bread and wine into his own body and blood; it is he that chiefly and principally forgiveth sins in the sacraments of baptism, penance, &c. It is what St. Augustine so often repeats against the Donatists, that it is Christ that baptizeth, though the instrumental minister be a sinner or a heretic; and this is what all Catholics confess and profess. ---

The holy sacrifice and sacrament is to be offered and received with a devout and grateful remembrance of Christ's benefits, and especially of his sufferings and death for all mankind. But to teach that it is a bare, though devout memorial, or a remembrance only, so as to exclude the real presence of Christ, under the outward appearances of bread and wine, is inconsistent with the constant belief and consent of all Christian churches, both of the west and east, and contradicts the plain words of Christ. The learned bishop of Meaux, in his Exposition of the Catholic Faith, desires all Christians to take notice, that Christ does not command them to remember him, but to take his body and blood with a remembrance of him, and his benefits: this is the import of all the words, put together. This is my body: this is my blood: do this in, for, or with a remembrance of me. (Witham) ---

This sacrifice and sacrament is to be continued in the Church to the end of the world, to shew forth the death of Christ, until he cometh. But this commemoration, or remembrance, is by no means inconsistent with the real presence of his body and blood, under these sacramental veils, which represent his death; on the contrary, it is the manner that he himself hath commanded, of commemorating and celebrating his death, by offering in sacrifice, and receiving in the sacrament, that body and blood by which we were redeemed. (Challoner) ---

Which is given, &c. He does not say, which shall be offered for you, but which is offered;[2] because it was already a true sacrifice, in which Christ was truly present which he offered in advance to his eternal Father, before that which he was going to offer the next day, in a different manner, on the cross. This sacrifice was the consummation of the figurative Pasch, and the promise or pledge of the bloody offering, which Christ would make on the cross. ... It was not the mere figure of his body, which was crucified, but the true body and the true blood. In the same manner it is both the one and the other which are given, and really present, in the Eucharist. (Calmet) ---

To renew the memory of what I have this day done, in giving you my body; and what I shall do to-morrow, in delivering my blood and my life for the whole world, do you hereafter what you now see me do. Take bread, break it, sand say, This is my body; and it will become so really and truly, as it now is in my hands. (Calmet)

===============================

[BIBLIOGRAPHY]

In the original, the present tense is used in this and in the following verse. Greek: Touto esti to soma mou, to uper umon didomenon. And, Greek: Touto to poterion, ... to uper umon ekchunomenon. Here we must also remark, that the relative Greek: To, which, is not governed or ruled (as some would perhaps think) by the noun, blood, but by the word chalice, or cup; ( Greek: poterion ) which evidently sheweth that the blood, as the contents of the chalice, or as in the chalice, is shed for us: (in the present tense, for so the Greek hath it, and not only as upon the cross) And, therefore, as it followeth hence evidently, that it is no bare figure, but his blood indeed, so it followeth necessarily that it is a sacrifice and propitiatory, as shed for our sins. For all who know Scripture phraseology, know also that blood to be shed for sin, is to be sacrificed in atonement for sin. ---

Beza, in his Annot. Nov. Test. an. 1556, [erroneously] says this cannot be truly said either of the chalice, or of the contents of the chalice; which is to give the lie to the evangelist, or to deny it to be true Scripture, though he declares the words are found in all both Greek and Latin copies. (Bristow)

====================

Haydock: Luk 22:29 - And I assign to you, as my Father hath assigned to me, a kingdom And I assign to you, as my Father hath assigned to me, a kingdom; i.e. as my heavenly Father decreed to exalt me, even as man, and with my human nat...

And I assign to you, as my Father hath assigned to me, a kingdom; i.e. as my heavenly Father decreed to exalt me, even as man, and with my human nature, above all creatures; so will I also make you, according to you different merits, partakers of my glory. (Witham)

Haydock: Luk 22:30 - That you may eat and drink // Sit upon thrones That you may eat and drink of the spiritual banquet of the joys of heaven which in the Scriptures are divers times compared to a feast or banquet. (W...

That you may eat and drink of the spiritual banquet of the joys of heaven which in the Scriptures are divers times compared to a feast or banquet. (Witham) ---

Sit upon thrones. Judas is excepted from the dignity of this great promise. For it is probable he had gone out before the Lord spoke these words. They likewise are excepted, who (St. John vi. 66.) having heard the words of an incomprehensible mystery, turned back and went away. (Ven. Bede)

Haydock: Luk 22:31 - Satan hath desired to have you, that he may sift you as wheat Satan hath desired to have you, that he may sift you as wheat. In these words is expressed both what Satan desired, and what God permitted. Satan d...

Satan hath desired to have you, that he may sift you as wheat. In these words is expressed both what Satan desired, and what God permitted. Satan desired leave to tempt them, that he might make them fall from their faith in Christ. Almighty God permitted this temptation, this trial, to convince them how weak they were of themselves: he permitted their frailty to be partly overcome, yet so that rising again by his grace, they should be cleansed and purified as wheat when it is sifted: and that shortly after, being strengthened and confirmed by the coming of the Holy Ghost, they might become new men, enabled to stand firm against all the attacks of their greatest adversaries. (Witham)

Haydock: Luk 22:32 - That thy faith fail not // And thou being once converted, confirm thy brethren That thy faith fail not. The faith of Peter, established by the coming of the Holy Ghost, hath never failed, nor can fail, being built upon a rock, ...

That thy faith fail not. The faith of Peter, established by the coming of the Holy Ghost, hath never failed, nor can fail, being built upon a rock, which is Christ himself, and being guided by the spirit of truth, as Christ promised. (John xv. 26. and xvi. 13.) ---

And thou being once converted, confirm thy brethren, even all the other apostles and bishops, over whom I have made and constituted thee and thy successors the chief head, that such a head being appointed by divine authority, all occasions of schisms and divisions might cease, says St. Jerome. (Witham) ---

Admire the superabundance of the divine patience. That the disciple might not lose courage, he promised him pardon before he has committed the crime, and restores him again to his apostolic dignity, saying, confirm thy brethren. (St. Cyril)

Haydock: Luk 22:36 - That hath not That hath not, &c. Whilst the apostles are contending for prerogative, he reminds them that now is the time of danger and slaughter; for I, your Mas...

That hath not, &c. Whilst the apostles are contending for prerogative, he reminds them that now is the time of danger and slaughter; for I, your Master, (says he) shall be led to a dishonourable death, and reputed among the wicked: as all which hath been foretold of me shall have their end; that is, be fulfilled. Wishing also to insinuate the violence of the assaults they themselves will have to sustain, he mentions a sword; but does not reveal all, lest they should be too much alarmed; nor does he entirely suppress the mention of it, lest sudden attacks might overpower them, had they not been forewarned. (Theophylactus)

Haydock: Luk 22:38 - Behold here are two swords Behold here are two swords, &c. The disciples not understanding the hidden meaning of the words in the preceding verse, and thinking they should hav...

Behold here are two swords, &c. The disciples not understanding the hidden meaning of the words in the preceding verse, and thinking they should have need of swords against the attack of the traitor Judas, say, behold here two swords. (St. Cyril) ---

But if he had wished them to rely upon human aid, not even a hundred swords would have sufficed; but, if the power of man was unnecessary in their regard, even two swords are sufficient, and more than are wanted. (St. John Chrysostom) ---

Even two swords are sufficient testimony of our Saviour's having suffered spontaneously. One to shew that the apostles had courage to contend for their Master, and that their Lord had the power of healing the servant, Malchus, who was maimed; the other, which was not drawn from its scabbard, shews that the apostles were withheld from doing in his defence as much as they could have done. (Ven. Bede)

Haydock: Luk 22:43 - An angel ... strengthening him // In an agony An angel ... strengthening him. Christ, our Redeemer, was truly God and truly man. And being made man by a real union of his divine person and natu...

An angel ... strengthening him. Christ, our Redeemer, was truly God and truly man. And being made man by a real union of his divine person and nature, to our weak and infirm human nature, he likewise took upon him our infirmities, sin excepted. We must consider him as man, when we read of his being tempted in the wilderness, (Matthew iv.) when he wept at the raising of Lazarus out of the grave, (John xi.) as often as we read of his praying; and here, when we read of his praying, and redoubling his prayer in the garden, when we find him seized with fear, sadness, and grief: for though, as God, he could prevent and hinder these passions and affections natural to man, yet he could also permit them to affect his human nature; as he permitted himself to be seized with hunger, after fasting forty days; and so he permitted his human nature to be seized with fear and grief in this garden of Gethsemani. As angels came and ministered to him after his fast in the wilderness, so an angel came as it were to propose to him the divine decree, that he was to suffer and die for the redemption of mankind; and as man, he is said to be strengthened and comforted by the angel: he, who as God, was Lord and maker of the angels, and so needed not to be strengthened by his creatures. Besides what happened to Christ as man, were ordained as instructions for us. We are taught by angels appearing, that they were not only ready to assist and wait upon Christ, but that, by the order of divine Providence, they are also ready to assist us in our temptations and afflictions. ---

In an agony. This Greek word signifies, a strife, or combat; not that there could be any opposition or contrariety in the interior of Christ, whose human will was always perfectly subject to his divine will, and the sensitive part to reason: yet, inasmuch as he was truly man, his human nature dreaded all those sufferings which at that time were represented to his soul, and which in a few hours he was to undergo. (Witham)

Haydock: Luk 22:44 - And his sweat became as drops of blood And his sweat became as drops of blood, &c. This has sometimes happened, though in a lesser degree, to persons under extraordinary grief, if we beli...

And his sweat became as drops of blood, &c. This has sometimes happened, though in a lesser degree, to persons under extraordinary grief, if we believe Aristotle, lib. iii. Animanium, chap. xix. p. 891, and lib. de part. Animalium, chap. v. p. 1156. Ed. Aureliæ Allobr. an 1607. ---

This passage of Christ's bloody sweat, and of the apparition of the angel, was heretofore wanting in divers both Greek and Latin copies; as appears by St. Jerome, (lib. ii. cont. Pelagianos. tom. iv, part 2, p. 521) and by St. Hilary, lib. x. de Trin. p. 1062. Nov. Ed. It seems to have been left out by ignorant transcribers, who thought it not consistent with the dignity of Christ. But we find it in the above-said place, in St. Jerome, in St. John Chrysostom (hom. lxxxiv. in Matt.), in St. Augustine (in Psalm cxl. tom. iv, p. 1564, and in Psalm xciii, p. 1013.) in St. Epiphanius in Ancorato, p. 36, Ed. Petav. (Witham)

Gill: Luk 22:1 - Now the feast of unleavened bread drew nigh // Which is called the passover Now the feast of unleavened bread drew nigh,.... Which lasted seven days; during which the Jews eat their bread without leaven, in commemoration of th...

Now the feast of unleavened bread drew nigh,.... Which lasted seven days; during which the Jews eat their bread without leaven, in commemoration of the haste in which they went out of Egypt; being such, that they had not time to leaven their dough, but took it with their kneadingtroughs along with them, as it was; and as figurative of the unleavened bread of sincerity and truth, with which the Gospel feast is to be kept; see Exo 12:34.

Which is called the passover; because the Lord passed over the houses of the Israelites, when he slew all the firstborn in Egypt; now the time of this feast drew near, when the conspiracy was formed against the life of Christ: Matthew and Mark are more precise, and suggest, that it was two days before the passover; see Mat 26:2.

Gill: Luk 22:2 - And the chief priests and Scribes // And sought how they might kill him // for they feared the people And the chief priests and Scribes,.... Matthew adds, "and the elders of the people"; which made up the great sanhedrim and council of the nation; thes...

And the chief priests and Scribes,.... Matthew adds, "and the elders of the people"; which made up the great sanhedrim and council of the nation; these met together, not in their usual place the temple, but at the palace of Caiaphas, the high priest; see Mat 24:3.

And sought how they might kill him; that is, "Jesus", as the Vulgate Latin and Ethiopic versions read; they had determined before, upon the advice of Caiaphas, to put him to death, and very likely had fixed what kind of death he should die; see Joh 11:49 and now they consult together, of the manner of bringing it about, and at what time; and the majority were not for doing it on a feast day, when there was a great concourse of people, but with more privacy:

for they feared the people: which were now in great multitudes with him, who came along with him, from Galilee, and other parts; and had hosanna'd him into the city, and still abode with him, and their numbers were increasing; and the sanhedrim were aware, that at the passover there would be still a greater company of people from all parts of the land; and they might conclude, that he would have a large number of his friends come out of Galilee, where he had been for the most part teaching, and working miracles; and they were afraid, should they lay hold on him publicly, the people would rise and stone them; at least would rescue him out of their hands, and disappoint them of their designs.

Gill: Luk 22:3 - Then entered Satan into Judas // surnamed Iscariot // Being of the number of the twelve Then entered Satan into Judas,.... At the same time that the sanhedrim were sitting, and consulting about the death of Christ, Satan, or the adversary...

Then entered Satan into Judas,.... At the same time that the sanhedrim were sitting, and consulting about the death of Christ, Satan, or the adversary, as the word signifies, the devil, who is the enemy of the Messiah, the woman's seed, entered into Judas; not corporeally, as he did into those that were possessed by him; but he entered "into his heart", as the Ethiopic version renders it; he put it into his heart to betray him, as it is said in Joh 13:2 he stirred up, and worked upon the corruptions of his heart; suggested evil things to his mind, and baited his temptations agreeable to his malice and covetousness: and this man was

surnamed Iscariot; to distinguish him from another apostle of the same name; concerning this his surname; see Gill on Mat 10:4, See Gill on Joh 13:2.

Being of the number of the twelve; apostles, or disciples of Jesus, as the Persic version reads, and which is an aggravation of his sin: now this being two days before the passover, shows, that the sop which Judas took, after which the devil entered into him, Joh 13:27 could not be the passover sop, but was the sop he ate at the supper in Bethany, in the house of Simon the leper, so long before it.

Gill: Luk 22:4 - And he went his way // and communed with the chief priests and captains // how he might betray him unto them And he went his way,.... From Christ, and the rest of the apostles, out of Bethany; and when it was night, about two miles from Jerusalem, whither he ...

And he went his way,.... From Christ, and the rest of the apostles, out of Bethany; and when it was night, about two miles from Jerusalem, whither he went directly:

and communed with the chief priests and captains; that is, of the temple, as in Luk 22:52 and so the Persic version reads, "the militia of the temple"; and the Syriac version renders it, "the captains of the militia of the temple"; instead of captains, the Ethiopic version, reads "Scribes", and so does the Arabic, and which, adds, "and the soldiers"; but these captains were not Roman officers, or soldiers, but ecclesiastical persons, who presided in the temple, and were heads and governors, over bodies of men employed there, of which sort were the following i:

"there were fifteen, ממונין, presidents, or governors in the sanctuary, and so they were appointed for ever over each of these fifteen things, one governor; and they are these: one was over the times, or solemn seasons; the second, over the shutting of the gates: the third, over those that kept watch; the fourth, over the singers; the fifth, over the cymbal, with the rest of the singing instruments; the sixth, over the lots; the seventh over the nests (of doves); the eighth, over the seals, or tickets; the ninth, over the drink offerings; the tenth, over the sick (priests); the eleventh, over the waters; the twelfth, over the business of the shewbread; the thirteenth, over the business of the incense; the fourteenth, over the business of the vail; and the fifteenth, over the business of the priests' garments; and every one of these governors had under him "abundance of men", that so they might prepare the business they presided over.''

These seem rather to be meant, than the watch in the temple; which, though kept in several places, there was but one single person that presided over it; as appears from the above account, and from what follows; and who was called the man of the mountain of the house, or the governor of the temple k:

"in three places the priests kept watch in the sanctuary, in the house of Abtines, and in the house of Nitzotz, and in the house of Moked, and the Levites in twenty and one places--the man of the mountain of the house, went round every ward with torches burning before him, and every one that was not standing, he said unto him, peace be on thee; and if he found he was asleep, he struck him with his staff, and had power to burn his garments.''

Whence it does not appear to me, that there were heads or captains over every ward, as Dr. Lightfoot suggests, but one over them all; perhaps these captains may be the same with the governors of the temple, as in 1 Esdras:

And Helkias, Zacharias, and Syelus, the governors of the temple, gave to the priests for the passover two thousand and six hundred sheep, and three hundred calves. (1 Esdras 1:8)

Did very carefully oversee the holy works, assisting the ancients of the Jews and governors of the temple. (1 Esdras 7:2)

But be these who they will, Judas it seems was informed where, and upon what they were met together, and he went to them, and conversed with them:

how he might betray him unto them; in the most secret manner, and with, the least noise and disturbance.

Gill: Luk 22:5 - And they were glad // and covenanted to give him money And they were glad,.... For nothing could be more opportune and agreeable to them, than that one of his disciples should meet them at this juncture, a...

And they were glad,.... For nothing could be more opportune and agreeable to them, than that one of his disciples should meet them at this juncture, and offer to put him into their hands in the most private manner;

and covenanted to give him money. The Ethiopic version read, "thirty pieces of silver"; which was the sum they agreed to give him, and he accepted of; see Mat 26:15.

Gill: Luk 22:6 - And he promised // and sought opportunity // to betray him unto them in the absence of the people And he promised,.... He undertook to deliver him into their hands; he laid himself under obligation to do it; he faithfully promised he would. The Ara...

And he promised,.... He undertook to deliver him into their hands; he laid himself under obligation to do it; he faithfully promised he would. The Arabic version renders it, he gave thanks; for the money he received, being well pleased he had made such a bargain; and so the word here used sometimes signifies; and indeed commonly either to confess; or to give thanks, in which latter sense it is used, in Mat 11:25 but here rather it is to be understood in the sense of promising:

and sought opportunity; the two days following before the passover:

to betray him unto them in the absence of the people: when they were gone from him, and he was alone; but found no opportunity of doing it this way, which they had agreed upon with him, and he had promised, until the night of the passover, when he was alone in the garden with his disciples.

Gill: Luk 22:7 - Then came the day of unleavened bread // when the passover must be killed Then came the day of unleavened bread,.... The first of them, the fourteenth day of the month Nisan: when the passover must be killed; that is, the...

Then came the day of unleavened bread,.... The first of them, the fourteenth day of the month Nisan:

when the passover must be killed; that is, the passover lamb, as the Persic version renders it; and which, according to the law in Exo 12:6 was to be done between the two evenings; See Gill on Mat 26:17.

Gill: Luk 22:8 - And he sent Peter and John // saying, go and prepare us the passover, that we may eat And he sent Peter and John,.... That is, Jesus sent them, as the Syriac, Persic, and Ethiopic versions express it; these were two favourite disciples ...

And he sent Peter and John,.... That is, Jesus sent them, as the Syriac, Persic, and Ethiopic versions express it; these were two favourite disciples of Christ, and were now sent by him from Bethany to Jerusalem:

saying, go and prepare us the passover, that we may eat; it together; so servants used to be sent, to go and prepare the passover for their masters; See Gill on Mat 26:17.

Gill: Luk 22:9 - And they said unto him, where wilt thou that we prepare? And they said unto him, where wilt thou that we prepare? Meaning, not in what village, town, or city, for it was a fixed and determined thing, that th...

And they said unto him, where wilt thou that we prepare? Meaning, not in what village, town, or city, for it was a fixed and determined thing, that the passover should be eaten at Jerusalem, and nowhere else; see Deu 16:2, but in what house in Jerusalem?

Gill: Luk 22:10 - And he said unto them, behold // when ye are entered into the city // there shall a man meet you, bearing a pitcher of water // follow him into the house where he entereth in And he said unto them, behold,.... Giving them a sign, whereby they should know the very house, where he would keep the passover: when ye are enter...

And he said unto them, behold,.... Giving them a sign, whereby they should know the very house, where he would keep the passover:

when ye are entered into the city; that is, the city of Jerusalem; for Christ and his disciples were now at Bethany, from whence he sent Peter and John thither, where only the passover was to be killed and eaten:

there shall a man meet you, bearing a pitcher of water; the Persic version adds, "upon his back"; for which he had been to some well, or fountain in the city, in order to mix with wine at the passover:

follow him into the house where he entereth in; so that it seems they were to return, and go after him into the house, where he went with his pitcher of water; this was a trial of the faith and obedience of the disciples, and, as the sequel shows, a proof of the omniscience and deity of Christ.

Gill: Luk 22:11 - And ye shall say unto the goodman of the house // the master saith unto thee // where is the guest chamber // where I shall eat the passover with my disciples And ye shall say unto the goodman of the house,.... The master of it; for the man bearing the pitcher of water seems to be a servant only: the mast...

And ye shall say unto the goodman of the house,.... The master of it; for the man bearing the pitcher of water seems to be a servant only:

the master saith unto thee: by these his two disciples, Peter and John; it looks as if the word "master", as peculiar to Christ, and by way of eminency belonging to him, Mat 23:10 was well known to those who believed, and were followers of him, as the man of this house might be; see Joh 11:28. The Syriac and Persic versions read, "our master saith", and leave out the other phrase, to thee:

where is the guest chamber; or dining room: the word properly signifies an inn, or place to wait at; so called, from travellers unloosing their burdens there, either from themselves, or their beasts; the Arabic version renders it, "the place of my rest": a place for refreshment and feasting:

where I shall eat the passover with my disciples? who were a sufficient number to eat the passover lamb by themselves; See Gill on Mat 26:18.

Gill: Luk 22:12 - And he shall show you a large upper room furnished // there make ready And he shall show you a large upper room furnished,.... With all things necessary, to eat and drink out of, at the passover; there make ready. The ...

And he shall show you a large upper room furnished,.... With all things necessary, to eat and drink out of, at the passover;

there make ready. The Ethiopic version adds, "for us", as in Mar 14:15. The Persic version renders it, "there prepare a place"; but this was prepared already; the words design the preparation of the passover, and every thing proper for it.

Gill: Luk 22:13 - And they went // and found as he had said unto them // and they made ready the passover And they went,.... From Bethany to Jerusalem: and found as he had said unto them; they met the man with the pitcher of water, and by following him,...

And they went,.... From Bethany to Jerusalem:

and found as he had said unto them; they met the man with the pitcher of water, and by following him, found the house Christ meant to keep the passover at; they told the master of it, what Christ ordered them, who immediately showed them a very convenient room, as he had described to them:

and they made ready the passover; provided a lamb, and got it killed and dressed, and prepared every thing necessary for the keeping of the feast, according to divine appointment; See Gill on Mat 26:19.

Gill: Luk 22:14 - And when the hour was come // he sat down // and the twelve apostles with him And when the hour was come,.... When it was evening, the last of the two evenings, when it was dark, at least after six o'clock; See Gill on Mat 26:20...

And when the hour was come,.... When it was evening, the last of the two evenings, when it was dark, at least after six o'clock; See Gill on Mat 26:20.

he sat down; or lay along on a couch, as was the custom; see the note, as before:

and the twelve apostles with him; for Judas, after he had made his bargain with the chief priests, Scribes, and elders, came and took his place with the rest of the apostles, both to cover his sin, and to watch the best opportunity of betraying his master.

Gill: Luk 22:15 - And he said unto them // With desire have I desired to eat this passover with you before I suffer And he said unto them,.... The twelve apostles, as they were eating the passover, it being usual to talk and converse much at such a time; See Gill on...

And he said unto them,.... The twelve apostles, as they were eating the passover, it being usual to talk and converse much at such a time; See Gill on Mat 26:21.

With desire have I desired to eat this passover with you before I suffer; not for the sake of eating; for though he was traduced as a glutton, and did often eat and drink in a free and familiar way, both at the tables of Pharisees, and of publicans and sinners; yet he was not a man given to appetite; witness his fast of forty days and forty nights, and his great negligence of himself, which sometimes obliged his disciples to pray him to eat; see Joh 4:31. Indeed, according to the Jewish canons, it was not judged proper that a man should eat much on the day before the passover, that he might be hungry, and eat the passover, בתאבון, "with desire" l, or with an appetite. Our Lord may allude to this; but this was not the thing he meant; nor merely does he say this on account of the passover, as it was God's ordinance; though as he was made under the law, and that was in his heart, he had a great regard to it, and a delight in it, which he had shown in his frequent and constant attendance on it from his youth: but though he had kept many passovers, yet of none of them did he say what he does of this, which was his fourth passover from his entrance on his public ministry, and his last: two reasons are suggested in the text why he so greatly desired to eat this passover; the one is, because he should eat it "with" his disciples; an emphasis lies on the phrase, "with you", to whom, and not so much to the passover, and the eating of that, was his desire; as it is to all his people: it was so from everlasting, when he desired them as his spouse and bride; and in time, when he became incarnate, suffered, died, and gave himself for them: his desire is towards them whilst in unregeneracy, that they may be converted; and to them when converted, notwithstanding all their backslidings and revoltings. His desire is to their persons, and the comeliness and beauty of them, which he himself has put upon them; and to their graces, and the exercise of them, with which he is ravished; and to their company and communion with them, which he chooses and delights in: and his desire is towards their being with him to all eternity, and which he delighted in the fore views of from eternity; and is the joy set before him, and which carried him through his sufferings and death; and is the amount and accomplishment of all his prayers and intercession: and the other reason of this his strong desire in the text is, that this was the last passover, and that his sufferings and death were just at hand, and which he longed to have over; not that he desired these sufferings, for the sake of them, which could not be agreeable to, and desirable by his human nature; but because of the effects of them; since hereby justice would be satisfied, the law would be fulfilled, sin atoned for, and the salvation of his elect obtained; for whom he bore the strongest affection, and whom he loved with a love of complacency, and whose salvation he most earnestly desired, and even sufferings for the sake of it.

Gill: Luk 22:16 - For I say unto you, I will not any more eat thereof // until it be fulfilled in the kingdom of God For I say unto you, I will not any more eat thereof,.... Of the passover, and which now, with the rest of the ceremonial law, was to be abolished: ...

For I say unto you, I will not any more eat thereof,.... Of the passover, and which now, with the rest of the ceremonial law, was to be abolished:

until it be fulfilled in the kingdom of God; signifying, not that he should eat of it in the kingdom of God, where it would be fulfilled; seeing the passover was never more to take place, neither in the Gospel dispensation, nor in the heavenly glory; both which may be meant by the kingdom of God; but that he should never eat more of it in this ceremonial way, since it would have its accomplishment in each of those states: and it has been already fulfilled under the Gospel dispensation, which is often meant by the kingdom of God; in himself, who is the passover sacrificed for us, 1Co 5:7 for the passover lamb was a type of Christ, and he is the sum and substance of that shadow, and the fulfilling end of that type; it had its accomplishment in him; of which See Gill on 1Co 5:7 and it will also be fulfilled in the kingdom of heaven, or eternal glory, when there will be a perfect deliverance of the saints from sin, Satan, and the world; which the deliverance of the Israelites out of Egypt was typical of, commemorated in the passover; and therefore then will be sung the song of Moses, and the Lamb; and then will Christ, and his true followers, eat and drink together in his Father's kingdom, and spend an endless eternity in never fading joys and pleasures.

Gill: Luk 22:17 - And he took the cup and gave thanks // and said, take this and divide it among yourselves And he took the cup and gave thanks,.... There were four cups of wine drank at the passover, which the poorest man in Israel was obliged to drink; and...

And he took the cup and gave thanks,.... There were four cups of wine drank at the passover, which the poorest man in Israel was obliged to drink; and over each of which a blessing was pronounced m: and this was one of them, and seems to be the first; for the passover was begun by mixing a cup of wine, and blessing it, or giving thanks over it n; and which was usually done in the following manner o:

"blessed art thou, O Lord, our God, the King of the world, who hast created "the fruit of the vine": blessed art thou, O Lord our God, the King of the world, who hath chosen us above all people, and hath exalted us above every tongue, and hath sanctified us by his commandments; and thou hast given unto us, O Lord our God, in love, the stated festivals for joy, and the feasts and seasons for rejoicing; this day of the feast of unleavened bread, this time of our freedom, a holy convocation, in remembrance of the going out of Egypt; for thou hast chosen us, and thou hast sanctified us, above all people; and the feasts of thine holiness with joy and rejoicing thou hast made us to inherit: blessed art thou, O Lord, who hast sanctified Israel, and the seasons: blessed art thou, O Lord our God, who hath kept us alive, and preserved us, and hast brought us to this time.''

After this every one drank of his cup, and put it on the table: accordingly it follows,

and said, take this and divide it among yourselves; that is, every one drink of it.

Gill: Luk 22:18 - For I say unto you, I will not drink of the fruit of the vine // until the kingdom of God shall come For I say unto you, I will not drink of the fruit of the vine,.... That is, wine; see the blessing at the passover cup in the notes on the preceding v...

For I say unto you, I will not drink of the fruit of the vine,.... That is, wine; see the blessing at the passover cup in the notes on the preceding verse:

until the kingdom of God shall come; with power, as in Mar 9:1 in the resurrection of Christ from the dead; in his exaltation and session at God's right hand; in the pouring forth of the Spirit on the apostles; in the conversion of great multitudes, both in Judea, and in the Gentile world; in the destruction of the Jews; in the latter day glory; and in the ultimate state of happiness and bliss in the world to come. The Ethiopic version reads, "until I drink it new in the kingdom of God"; as in Mar 14:25.

Gill: Luk 22:19 - And he took bread and gave thanks // and brake it, and gave unto them // saying, this is my body // which is given for you // This do in remembrance of me And he took bread and gave thanks,.... Or blessed it, as in Mat 26:26. Here begins the account of the Lord's supper after the passover was eaten; a...

And he took bread and gave thanks,.... Or blessed it, as in Mat 26:26. Here begins the account of the Lord's supper after the passover was eaten;

and brake it, and gave unto them; the disciples, as is expressed in Mat 26:26

saying, this is my body; See Gill on Mat 26:26.

which is given for you; or will be given for you, as an offering for sin in your room and stead; and accordingly it was given into the hands of men, and of justice, and unto death. The phrase denotes the substitution and sacrifice of Christ in the room of his people, and the voluntariness of it; and is only mentioned by Luke in this account: the Apostle Paul writes, which is broken for you, 1Co 11:24 alluding to the breaking of the bread in the ordinance, and as expressing the bruises, wounds, sufferings, and death of Christ: the Ethiopic version here adds, "for the redemption of many".

This do in remembrance of me; that is, eat this bread in remembrance of my love to you, and in commemoration of my body being offered up for you. Observe this ordinance in the manner I now institute it, in time to come, in memory of what I am about to do for you; for this direction does not only regard the present time and action, but is intended as a rule to be observed by the churches of Christ in all ages, to his second coming: and it is to be observed, that the Lord's supper is not a reiteration, but a commemoration of the sacrifice of Christ. This phrase is only mentioned by Luke here, and by the Apostle Paul, who adds it also at the drinking of the cup, 1Co 11:24. The Persic version here reads, "do this perpetually in remembrance of me".

Gill: Luk 22:20 - Likewise also the cup after supper // saying, this cup is the New Testament in my blood, which is shed for you Likewise also the cup after supper,.... Both after the passover, and the Lord's supper; that is, he took the cup after they had eaten the bread, and g...

Likewise also the cup after supper,.... Both after the passover, and the Lord's supper; that is, he took the cup after they had eaten the bread, and gave thanks over it, and gave it to his disciples, bidding them drink of it, as in Mat 26:27, See Gill on Mat 26:27,

saying, this cup is the New Testament in my blood, which is shed for you. The Ethiopic version reads, "for many"; as in Mat 26:28 where it is added, "for the remission of sins"; See Gill on Mat 26:28.

Gill: Luk 22:21 - But behold the hand of him that betrayeth me // with me on the table But behold the hand of him that betrayeth me,.... By the "hand" is meant, not figuratively the counsel, contrivance, and conspiracy of Judas to betray...

But behold the hand of him that betrayeth me,.... By the "hand" is meant, not figuratively the counsel, contrivance, and conspiracy of Judas to betray him, as the word is used in 2Sa 14:19 but literally the hand of Judas, which was then dipping in the dish with Christ, Mat 26:23 and it follows here, is

with me on the table; and is an aggravation of his sin, that one that sat with him at his table, ate bread with him, and dipped his morsel in the same dish, should be the betrayer of him, according to the prophecy in Psa 41:9 as well as describes and points at the person that should do this action, even one of his disciples; for which disciples, he had just now said, his body is given, and his blood is shed. The phrase, "with me", is left out in the Syriac and Persic versions. From Luke's account it appears most clearly, that Judas was not only at the passover, but at the Lord's supper, since this was said when both were over.

Gill: Luk 22:22 - And truly the son of man goeth // as it was determined // but woe unto that man by whom he is betrayed And truly the son of man goeth,.... That is, dies, which is going the way of all the earth, Jos 23:14 as it was determined; in the counsels and pur...

And truly the son of man goeth,.... That is, dies, which is going the way of all the earth, Jos 23:14

as it was determined; in the counsels and purposes of God, and agreed to by Christ in the covenant of grace; see Act 2:23 the death of Christ, the manner of it, and the means by which it was brought about, were all predetermined by God; yet this did not, in the least, excuse the sin of those concerned in it, nor exempt them from punishment:

but woe unto that man by whom he is betrayed; who not only came to an untimely end, and died an infamous death by his own hands, but went to his own place, the place of everlasting torments allotted him: wherefore in Mat 26:24 it is added, "it had been good for that man if he had not been born"; See Gill on Mat 26:24.

Gill: Luk 22:23 - And they began to inquire among themselves // which of them it was that should do this thing And they began to inquire among themselves,.... Two days before, at the supper in Bethany, when the same thing was hinted to them, they looked at one ...

And they began to inquire among themselves,.... Two days before, at the supper in Bethany, when the same thing was hinted to them, they looked at one another, Joh 13:22 as persons in the utmost surprise and consternation, not being able, for a while, either to speak to Christ, or one another; but now they inquired among themselves, and of Christ likewise, Mat 26:21

which of them it was that should do this thing; so barbarous, shocking, and horrible.

Gill: Luk 22:24 - And there was also a strife among them // which of them should be accounted the greatest And there was also a strife among them,.... The Persic version reads, "at a certain time there was a contention among the apostles"; and some think, t...

And there was also a strife among them,.... The Persic version reads, "at a certain time there was a contention among the apostles"; and some think, that this refers to the time when the mother of Zebedee's two sons asked the favour of Christ, to set one of them at his right hand, and the other at his left, in his kingdom; which greatly incensed the other disciples, and occasioned a dispute about precedence; when our Lord interposed, and used much the same arguments as here; and which, it is thought, Luke here inserts out of the proper place. The Ethiopic version renders it, "then his disciples disputed among themselves"; pinning it down to this very time: and what might give occasion to the present dispute, may be what Christ had said concerning the kingdom of God, Luk 22:16 which they understanding of the temporal kingdom of the Messiah, and fancying, by his words, that it was near at hand, began to strive among themselves who should be the greatest in it; or it might be brought on by their inquiry among themselves, who should betray him, which might lead them on each one to throw off the imputation from himself, and to commend himself as a steady follower of Jesus, and to express his hopes of being his chief favourite, and principal minister in his kingdom: for the strife was,

which of them should be accounted the greatest; by Christ; or that should be so in his kingdom. Perhaps the contention might be chiefly between Peter, James and John, the two sons of Zebedee, and who were the favourite disciples of Christ; and Peter might urge his seniority, and what Christ had said to him, Mat 16:18 and the rather, since it is certain Satan was now busy about him; wherefore Christ calls him by name, and singles him out among the rest, Luk 22:31.

Gill: Luk 22:25 - And he said unto them // the kings of the Gentiles exercise lordship over them // And they that exercise authority upon them are called benefactors And he said unto them,.... The disciples; that is, Jesus said to them, as the Syriac and Persic versions express: the kings of the Gentiles exercis...

And he said unto them,.... The disciples; that is, Jesus said to them, as the Syriac and Persic versions express:

the kings of the Gentiles exercise lordship over them; by which our Lord would dissuade his disciples from seeking to introduce a superiority over one another, since this was the practice of the Heathens, of the men of the world, of ignorant Gentiles; whereas Christ's kingdom was a spiritual kingdom, and not of this world, and therefore, not to be managed in such a way.

And they that exercise authority upon them are called benefactors; either by themselves, or by their court flatterers, to cover their ambition, tyranny, and cruelty. Two of the King's of Egypt were called by the name Euergetes p; the word that is here used, and translated "benefactors"; and it was commonly given to other kings, princes, and men in power: so Cyrus was called by the Armenians; Antigonus by the Greeks; and Phylacus among the Persians: the same name was given to Mithridates king of Pontus, to Titus Aelius Hadrianus, to Menander, to Marcus Aurelius Severus, and to Cato Uticensis, and others q.

Gill: Luk 22:26 - But ye shall not be so // but he that is greatest among you // let him be as the younger // And he that is chief // as he that doth serve But ye shall not be so,.... See Gill on Mat 20:26. but he that is greatest among you; in age or gifts, or would be thought to be the greatest, who...

But ye shall not be so,.... See Gill on Mat 20:26.

but he that is greatest among you; in age or gifts, or would be thought to be the greatest, who is most ambitious of grandeur and authority, which perhaps might be Peter's case, who was the oldest man:

let him be as the younger; as John, the beloved disciple, who was the youngest of them; and be as modest, and as humble as he, and reckon himself as in his place, and condescend to men of low estates, and esteem each other, even the youngest, better than himself. So the phrase, היכרבא היכזעירא r, "both greater and lesser", is used of the elder and younger.

And he that is chief; that is, a spiritual ruler and governor in the church of God, as all the disciples were:

as he that doth serve; for the apostles and ministers of the word, though they are over others in the Lord, and have the rule over them, yet they are servants for Jesus' sake, and so ought to reckon themselves; See Gill on Mat 20:27.

Gill: Luk 22:27 - For whether is greater // he that sitteth at meat // or he that serveth // is not he that sitteth at meat // but I am among you as he that serveth For whether is greater,.... Christ appeals to themselves, and puts a case that is plain and obvious to any one, who is the greater, and more honourabl...

For whether is greater,.... Christ appeals to themselves, and puts a case that is plain and obvious to any one, who is the greater, and more honourable person;

he that sitteth at meat; that sits, or lies down at table, and another waits on him:

or he that serveth? that stands behind, observes orders, and ministers to those that sit down:

is not he that sitteth at meat? you, and every one must own, that he is the greatest, and most honourable person:

but I am among you as he that serveth; Christ took upon him the form of a servant, and instead of being ministered unto, ministered to others; and had very lately, but two days before, gird himself, and took a basin and a towel, and washed and wiped the feet of his disciples: now our Lord, by his own example throughout the whole of his conduct among them, as well as by such a single action, would dissuade from their ambitious views of superiority over each other, and learn of him who was meek and lowly, and by love serve one another.

Gill: Luk 22:28 - Ye are they which have continued with me // in my temptations Ye are they which have continued with me,.... From the beginning of his ministry, to that very time, they abode by him, and never departed from him, w...

Ye are they which have continued with me,.... From the beginning of his ministry, to that very time, they abode by him, and never departed from him, when others withdrew and walked no more with him:

in my temptations: not in the wilderness by Satan; for they were not with him then, not being as yet called to be his disciples and followers: but in his afflictions, by the reproaches, and cavils, and ensnaring questions of the Scribes and Pharisees, and their attempts upon him to take away his life by stoning, &c. which were trials and temptations to him. So the Ethiopic version renders it, "in my affliction": now, since they had stood their ground, and firmly adhered to him in all his trials, he would have them still continue with him, and in his interest, though they should not have that temporal glory and grandeur they expected; but, on the contrary, fresh troubles and exercises, reproach, persecution, and death itself; and, for their encouragement, he promises both pleasure and honour, though of another sort, than what they were seeking after.

Gill: Luk 22:29 - And I appoint unto you a kingdom // as my Father hath appointed unto me And I appoint unto you a kingdom,.... Not a temporal one, but a spiritual one; and either intends that they should have in the government of the churc...

And I appoint unto you a kingdom,.... Not a temporal one, but a spiritual one; and either intends that they should have in the government of the church, peculiar to them, as apostles, they being set in the first, and highest place, and office, in the church; and have the keys of the kingdom of heaven, or the Gospel dispensation, and church state, committed to them, whereby they should open the door of faith to men, both to Jews and Gentiles; and have the power of binding and loosing, or of pronouncing things to be lawful or unlawful to be retained and used, and even of remitting sins in a ministerial and declarative way; and not only of rebuking and reproving for sin with authority, but even of inflicting corporeal punishment on delinquents, and that in a very severe way, as in the cases of Ananias and Sapphira, Elymas the sorcerer, the incestuous person at Corinth, and Hymenaeus and Philetus: or the kingdom of grace, which they had in common with all the saints, which lies not in outward things, but in righteousness, peace, and joy, and which can never be moved, or taken away; by virtue of which Christ reigns in the hearts of his people, and they are kings, and priests to God, and have power, as princes, with God and men, and overcome, and reign over their own lusts, and the world and Satan: or that kingdom, and dominion, and greatness of the kingdom, which shall be given to the saints of the Most High, Dan 7:27 in the latter day glory and kingdom state of Christ on earth, when the saints shall reign with him; or the kingdom of glory prepared from the foundation of the world; a gift of our heavenly Father's, which the saints are called unto, made meet for, and have a right unto, in Christ, and are heirs of, and into which he will introduce them at the last day: and indeed, all these senses may be taken into the account of this text:

as my Father hath appointed unto me; a kingdom, not of nature and providence, which he has in right of nature, being of the same essence, and having the same perfections with his Father; and in right of creation, all being made by him; for this is not given, or appointed to him; nor is he accountable for it to any, since he receives it not from any: but his mediatorial kingdom, which is given him, and which he will deliver up the account of to his Father another day; see Dan 7:14 which took place here on earth in the days of his flesh; though it was not of this world, nor came with observation, or with worldly pomp and splendour; and became more visible upon his resurrection from the dead, his exaltation at the right hand of God, the effusion of the Spirit, the great conversions among men, and the destruction of the Jewish nation. This kingdom takes in the whole Gospel dispensation, reaching from the times of Christ being in the flesh, to his second coming; and comprehends all the elect of God, who are a kingdom of priests, or a royal priesthood, in whose hearts Christ reigns by his Spirit, and grace; it includes the whole visible Gospel church state on earth, which is God's holy hill of Sion, over which he has set Christ, as king, and which he governs by laws of his own enacting, and by governors appointed under him, among whom he will reign; first more spiritually in the latter day, when the Gospel shall be spread all over the world, and the kingdoms of this world shall become the kingdoms of our Lord, and of his Christ; and next personally with all his saints together, for the space of a thousand years; and last of all triumphantly to all eternity, in the ultimate glory and kingdom of his Father.

Gill: Luk 22:30 - That ye may eat, and drink, at my table, in my kingdom // and sit on thrones // judging the twelve tribes of Israel That ye may eat, and drink, at my table, in my kingdom,.... In the Gospel dispensation, or Gospel church state, in which Christ has a table, called th...

That ye may eat, and drink, at my table, in my kingdom,.... In the Gospel dispensation, or Gospel church state, in which Christ has a table, called the table of the Lord, 1Co 10:21 which is the Lord's supper, and is a table well furnished with the best of provisions, his flesh and blood, of which believers may eat and drink with a hearty welcome; Christ himself being present to sup with them: and in his personal reign on earth, where will be the marriage supper of the Lamb, to which all the saints will be called; and will sit down with Abraham, Isaac, and Jacob, and be regaled with joys and pleasures not to be expressed: and in the ultimate glory, when the Lamb shall feed them, and shall lead them to fountains of water; and they shall never hunger nor thirst more, but shall have fulness of joy, and be satiated with pleasures that will never fade nor end:

and sit on thrones; expressive of the great honour and dignity they were raised to, both in this, and the other world, from a low and mean estate, being before as beggars on the dunghill, now among princes, and on thrones, even on the same throne with Christ; see 1Sa 2:8

judging the twelve tribes of Israel; doctrinally and ministerially; accusing the Jews, and arraigning them for the crucifixion of Christ; passing sentence upon them, and condemning them, and declaring that they should be damned for their disbelief and rejection of him; See Gill on Mat 19:28.

Gill: Luk 22:31 - And the Lord said, Simon, Simon // Simon, behold Satan hath desired to have you // that he may sift you as wheat And the Lord said, Simon, Simon,.... Peter is particularly, and by name, spoken to, either because he might be a principal person in the debate and co...

And the Lord said, Simon, Simon,.... Peter is particularly, and by name, spoken to, either because he might be a principal person in the debate and contention about superiority, mentioned in the context; or because he was chiefly to suffer in the following temptation of Satan; or because he was generally the mouth of the rest of the apostles; and he is addressed, not by the name of Peter, the name Christ gave him, when he first called him, signifying his future solidity, firmness, and steadfastness; because in this instance, he would not give any proof of it; but by his former name, Simon, and which is repeated, partly to show the earnestness of Christ in the delivery of what follows, and partly to express his affectionate concern for him; so the Jews observe s concerning God's calling, "Moses, Moses", Exo 3:4 that כפול לשון חבה, "the doubling of the word", is expressive "of love", and finding grace and favour; even as it is said, "Abraham, Abraham", Gen 22:11 or it may be to excite attention to what Christ was about to say. Though the Syriac, Persic, and Ethiopic versions read the first of these, "to Simon", thus: Jesus said to Simon,

Simon, behold Satan hath desired to have you; not only Peter, but all the apostles; for the word υμας, "you", is plural: Satan, the enemy of the woman's seed, the accuser of the brethren, the wicked one, and the tempter, desired, asked leave of God, for he can do nothing without permission; that he might have these disciples under his power, and in his hand; just as he got leave to have the goods, and even the body of Job in his hand, and fain would have had his life, and soul too, could he have obtained it; and he would have the lives and souls of others; for he goes about, seeking to devour whom he may; and he had now an evil eye upon the apostles, and wanted an opportunity to gratify his malice and envy: his end in desiring to have them in his power was,

that he may sift you as wheat; not to separate the chaff from the wheat, but to make them look like all chaff, by covering the wheat of grace with the chaff of sin and corruption; or to destroy the wheat, was it possible; or to toss them to and fro as wheat is in a sieve; that is, to afflict and distress them; see Amo 9:9 by scattering them both from Christ, and one another; by filling them with doubts about Jesus being the Messiah and Redeemer: and by frightening them with the fears of enemies and of death, which end he obtained; see Mat 26:56.

Gill: Luk 22:32 - But I have prayed for thee // that thy faith fail not // and when thou art converted, strengthen thy brethren But I have prayed for thee,.... Christ prayed for all the apostles; but particularly for Peter, because he was in the greatest danger: whether the pra...

But I have prayed for thee,.... Christ prayed for all the apostles; but particularly for Peter, because he was in the greatest danger: whether the prayer Christ refers to was that in Joh 17:1 in which are many passages relating to the preservation, sanctification, final perseverance and glorification of the apostles, as well as of other saints, as in Joh 17:9 and so these words might be spoken a little after that prayer was ended, which was about this same time; or whether it was any other, and only mental, and not vocal, is not certain: however, the petition was,

that thy faith fail not; Satan in his temptations strikes principally at the faith of God's people; that being a grace which gives much glory to God, and in the exercise of which believers have much peace, joy, and comfort; both which he envies and grudges; and it is also a shield which keeps off, and quenches his fiery darts, and is a piece of armour he is sadly harassed with, and therefore endeavours all he can to weaken and destroy it, or wrest it out of their hands: but though, through the power of sin, and the force of temptation, it may fail as to some degree of the steadfastness of it, as to the acting and exercise of it, and as to the sense believers may have of it; yet never as to its principle, it being an irrevocable gift of God's grace; a work of his almighty power; a solid and substantial grace, even the substance of things hoped for; an immortal and incorruptible seed, and of which Christ is the author and finisher; and to nothing more is its security owing, than to the prayers of Christ, which are always heard, and to his powerful mediation, and prevalent intercession; Christ is the advocate of his people; he prays that they might have faith, and then he prays, that it may not fail; and it shall not, notwithstanding all the opposition of hell, and earth, unto it:

and when thou art converted, strengthen thy brethren: Peter was now a converted man, and had been for some years; but whereas he would fall by temptation into a very great sin of denying his Lord, and which was attended with such circumstances as made him look like an unconverted, and an unregenerate man; his recovery by the fresh exercise of faith in Christ, and repentance for his sins, is called conversion: and which was not his own act, but owing to the power and efficacy of divine grace; see Jer 31:18. Some versions render it in the imperative, "in time, convert, turn, or return, and strengthen thy brethren"; as the Syriac, Arabic, and Persic versions: as he afterwards did: for whereas all the disciples forsook Christ, and fled, some one way, and some another, Peter, after his recovery, got them together again, and returned with them to Jerusalem; when they with him assembled together, till the third day Christ was risen: he strengthened their faith in the Messiah, and put them upon filling up the place of Judas, by choosing another apostle; and on the day of "Pentecost" preached a most excellent sermon, which as it was made useful for the conversion of three thousand sinners, was, doubtless, a means of confirming the minds of the disciples; and he has left two exceeding useful epistles for the strengthening of his brethren in all ages of time; the design of which is to establish the saints in faith and holiness, that they may not be drawn aside, and fall from the steadfastness of their faith, either by the lusts of the flesh, or by the persecutions of men, or by the error of the wicked.

Gill: Luk 22:33 - And he said unto him // I am ready to go with thee, both into prison and to death And he said unto him,.... That is, Simon, or Simeon, said unto him, as the Syriac and Persic versions express it; he made a reply to Jesus, saying, as...

And he said unto him,.... That is, Simon, or Simeon, said unto him, as the Syriac and Persic versions express it; he made a reply to Jesus, saying, as one fearless of danger, and confident in himself:

I am ready to go with thee, both into prison and to death; he suggests, that he was not afraid of Satan, nor of his temptations, of being sifted, shaken, and tossed by him: he was not to be frightened out of his faith by him, or to be scared with a prison, and death itself; he was ready for both; and they were welcome, come when they would; and rather than part from, or deny his Lord, he was then prepared to go with him, at once, to either of them. The phrase, to go, is not in the Syriac version.

Gill: Luk 22:34 - And he said // I tell thee // the cock shall not crow this day // before that thou shalt thrice deny that thou knowest me And he said,.... "To him", as all the Oriental versions add; to Peter, as what is said shows; that is, Jesus said to him, as the Syriac and Persic ver...

And he said,.... "To him", as all the Oriental versions add; to Peter, as what is said shows; that is, Jesus said to him, as the Syriac and Persic versions express:

I tell thee, Peter; who knew him, and his heart, better than he did himself, as well as knew what was to come, and what would befall him; and therefore declares it, as he does with the greatest assurance and certainty, and which might be depended on, and accordingly came to pass:

the cock shall not crow this day; in this night, as in Mar 14:30 or this night, as in Mat 26:34 for it was now night; a natural day includes both night and day; a like way of speaking, see in Luk 2:8

before that thou shalt thrice deny that thou knowest me; as he did, Luk 22:57. See Gill on Mat 26:34.

Gill: Luk 22:35 - And he said unto them // when I sent you without purse, and scrip, and shoes // lacked ye any thing? // and they said, nothing And he said unto them,.... To the disciples, as the Persic version reads; not to Peter only, but to them all: when I sent you without purse, and sc...

And he said unto them,.... To the disciples, as the Persic version reads; not to Peter only, but to them all:

when I sent you without purse, and scrip, and shoes; without the necessaries of life, without proper accommodations for a journey, without provisions, or money, to buy any with: so ανευ βαλαντιου, "without a purse", is, by the Scholiast on Aristophanes t, interpreted by ανευ αργυριου και δαπανης, "without money and expense": Christ here refers to his mission of them in Mat 10:5

lacked ye any thing? any of the common blessings of life, food to eat, or raiment to wear?

and they said, nothing; they lacked nothing at all; wherever they came, they had friendly accommodations; they were provided with every thing necessary for them; they had both food and raiment, and good lodgings in every place; the houses and hearts of men were opened by Christ to receive them, though they were sent out by him so empty and destitute.

Gill: Luk 22:36 - Then said he unto them // but now he that hath a purse let him take it, and likewise his scrip // and he that hath no sword // he that hath no sword, let him sell his garment and buy a sword Then said he unto them,.... That is, Jesus said unto them, as the Persic version expresses it: but now he that hath a purse let him take it, and li...

Then said he unto them,.... That is, Jesus said unto them, as the Persic version expresses it:

but now he that hath a purse let him take it, and likewise his scrip; signifying hereby, that from this time forward, immediately after his departure from them, after his death, resurrection, and ascension, when they should be sent into all the world to preach the Gospel, it would be otherwise with them than before; that they should be reduced to great penury and distress, should neither have food, nor money to buy any with; and that they should suffer hunger, and thirst, and nakedness, and have no certain dwellingplace, as was their case; see 1Co 4:11 and that they would not be received, and entertained in the manner they had been; and therefore it would be advisable, if they had any provisions, to take them with them in their scrips; or if they had any money, to carry it with them in their purses; for glad would they be to provide themselves with necessaries at any rate:

and he that hath no sword; the word "sword" is not in this clause, but in the next; it is only in the original, "he that hath not"; which, at first sight; looks as if the sense was, he that hath not a purse, or a scrip, to sell, and buy a sword with, let him sell his garment, and buy one: but, as De Dieu observes, the phrase, "he that hath not", is the same with "he that has nothing"; who is a poor man, and has no money to buy a sword with, let him part with his garment, which rich men, who had money, had no need to do; though the Syriac, Persic, and Arabic versions put the word sword, in both clauses;

he that hath no sword, let him sell his garment and buy a sword; that is, if he could get one no other way. Christ here uses the common dialect of the nation, as Dr. Lightfoot observes. So on the feast of dedication of the temple,

"if a man had not any thing to eat, but what he had by alms, he must beg, or מוכר כסותו, "sell his garment", and take oil, and lamps, and light them u.''

These words of Christ are not to be understood literally, that he would have his disciples furnish themselves with swords at any rate, since he would never have said, as he afterwards does, that two were sufficient; which could not be enough for eleven men; or have forbid Peter the use of one, as he did in a very little time after this: but his meaning is, that wherever they came, and a door was opened for the preaching of the Gospel, they would have many adversaries, and these powerful, and would be used with great violence, and be followed with rage and persecution; so that they might seem to stand in need of swords to defend them: the phrase is expressive of the danger they would be exposed to, and of their need of protection; and therefore it was wrong in them to be disputing and quarrelling about superiority, or looking out for, and expecting temporal pomp and grandeur, when this would be their forlorn, destitute, and afflicted condition; and they would quickly see the affliction and distress begin in himself. In "seven" ancient copies of Beza's, it is read in the future tense, "he shall take, he shall sell, he shall buy".

Gill: Luk 22:37 - For I say unto you, that this that is written // must yet be accomplished // and he was reckoned among the transgressors // for the things concerning me have an end For I say unto you, that this that is written,.... In Isa 53:12 must yet be accomplished; it having not been as yet; at least not so perfectly ful...

For I say unto you, that this that is written,.... In Isa 53:12

must yet be accomplished; it having not been as yet; at least not so perfectly fulfilled:

and he was reckoned among the transgressors. The Syriac and Arabic versions read in the first person, "and I shall be reckoned", &c. and so the Persic version, "that I may be numbered", &c. and the Ethiopic renders it, "and the Lord Jesus is numbered with sinners"; neither right: for the words are a proper citation from Isa 53:12 which, as the whole prophecy belongs to the Messiah, was fulfilled in Jesus; who, though he was no transgressor, yet being in the likeness of sinful flesh, and dwelling among, and conversing with sinners, was traduced as one, and was joined with Barabbas, a murderer, a thief, and a robber, and put up with him for the people to choose which of the two they would have released; and was at last crucified between two thieves; and more than this, being in the legal place, and stead of his people, and having their sins laid upon him, and imputed to him, he was made and accounted, by imputation, not only a sinner, but sin itself; and as such, was considered in the eye of the law, and by the justice of God, and was treated accordingly; See Gill on Mar 15:28.

for the things concerning me have an end. The Syriac version renders it, "all of them"; or "the whole of it", as the Ethiopic version; all that were concerning him; all the counsels, purposes, and decrees of God, relating to his sufferings and death; to the manner in which his death was brought about, by one of his disciples betraying him; to the several indignities he should be used with, by Herod, Pontius Pilate, the Jews, and Roman soldiers; and to his death itself; all which were by the determinate counsel, and foreknowledge of God, and now were about to have, and quickly had their fulfilling end; as also all his own covenant engagements and agreements he entered into with his Father, to bear the sins of many, to make his soul an offering for sin, to be numbered with transgressors, and pour out his soul unto death; and likewise all the types and shadows of the law, all sacrifices in general, and the daily sacrifice in particular, with the passover, brazen serpent, and other things, even the whole law, both moral and ceremonial, had their full and final accomplishment in him; together with all the prophecies of the Old Testament relating to this matter, particularly Gen 3:15.

Gill: Luk 22:38 - And they said, Lord, behold here are two swords // and he said unto them, it is enough And they said, Lord, behold here are two swords,.... That is, the disciples said so, as the Persic version expresses it; for they understood Christ's ...

And they said, Lord, behold here are two swords,.... That is, the disciples said so, as the Persic version expresses it; for they understood Christ's words literally; and two swords being among them, and which they might bring with them from Galilee, to defend themselves from thieves, and robbers, which infested the roads between that country and Jerusalem; and one of these, as appears afterwards, belonged to Peter; they mention them with a desire of knowing they were sufficient, or whether they must provide themselves with more:

and he said unto them, it is enough; or, "they are sufficient", as the Syriac, Arabic, and Ethiopic versions render it; which must be understood either ironically; yes, two swords, to be sure, are sufficient for eleven men, and against many and powerful enemies: or his meaning is, they were sufficient to answer his purpose, and be an emblem of what he designed by the sword: or this was a short way of speaking, suggesting their stupidity and ignorance: it is enough, it is very well, I perceive you do not understand my meaning, and I shall say no more at present.

Gill: Luk 22:39 - And he came out // and went, as he was wont, to the Mount of Olives // and his disciples also followed him And he came out,.... That is, "Christ", as the Persic version; or the "Lord Jesus", as the Ethiopic version expresses; he came out of the guestchamber...

And he came out,.... That is, "Christ", as the Persic version; or the "Lord Jesus", as the Ethiopic version expresses; he came out of the guestchamber, or upper room, and out of the house where he had been keeping the passover with his disciples; and he came out of the city of Jerusalem, to begin his sorrows and sufferings without the camp, where he was to end them:

and went, as he was wont, to the Mount of Olives. This had been his practice and custom for several nights past, as appears from Luk 21:37. Hence Judas knew the place he now went to, and could direct the soldiers and officers where to go, and apprehend him; and this shows the willingness of Christ to be taken, in order to suffer and die; otherwise he would have gone to another place, and not this. The Ethiopic version adds, "to pray", as he did; and, as very likely he was used; for he would sometimes continue a whole night in prayer on a mountain; see Luk 6:12

and his disciples also followed him; eleven of them, for Judas was now gone to the chief priests to inform them where Christ was going, that they might seize him: but the other disciples followed him, which was so ordered, that they might be witnesses of his sorrows and agonies in the garden, and of his being betrayed by Judas, and apprehended by the Jews; though upon this they forsook him and fled.

Gill: Luk 22:40 - And when he was at the place // he said unto them // pray that ye enter not into temptation And when he was at the place,.... In the garden, at Gethsemane, which was at the foot of the Mount of Olives; he said unto them; to the disciples, ...

And when he was at the place,.... In the garden, at Gethsemane, which was at the foot of the Mount of Olives;

he said unto them; to the disciples, as the Persic version reads;

pray that ye enter not into temptation. This, according to the Evangelists Matthew and Mark, was said to them after he had prayed the first time, and returned to the disciples, and found them sleeping; See Gill on Mat 26:41.

Gill: Luk 22:41 - And he was withdrawn from them // about a stone's cast // and kneeled down and prayed And he was withdrawn from them,.... That is, from the three disciples, Peter, James, and John, whom he took along with him, leaving the rest at some f...

And he was withdrawn from them,.... That is, from the three disciples, Peter, James, and John, whom he took along with him, leaving the rest at some further distance; and from these he removed,

about a stone's cast; fifty, or sixty feet from the place where they were:

and kneeled down and prayed; the following prayer.

Gill: Luk 22:42 - Saying, Father, if thou be willing // remove this cup from me // nevertheless not my will // but thine be done Saying, Father, if thou be willing,.... If it be consistent with thy will of saving sinners, and which thou hast declared to me, and I have undertook ...

Saying, Father, if thou be willing,.... If it be consistent with thy will of saving sinners, and which thou hast declared to me, and I have undertook to perform: the other evangelists say, "if it be possible"; See Gill on Mat 26:39.

remove this cup from me; meaning, either his present sorrows and distress, or his approaching sufferings and death, which he had in view, or both:

nevertheless not my will; as man, for Christ had an human will distinct from, though not contrary to his divine will:

but thine be done; which Christ undertook, and came into this world to do; and it was his meat and drink to do it, and was the same with his own will, as the Son of God; See Gill on Mat 26:39, and See Gill on Mat 26:42.

Gill: Luk 22:43 - And there appeared an angel unto him from heaven // strengthening him And there appeared an angel unto him from heaven,.... Whether this was Michael the archangel, as some have conjectured, or Gabriel, or what particular...

And there appeared an angel unto him from heaven,.... Whether this was Michael the archangel, as some have conjectured, or Gabriel, or what particular angel, is not for us to know, nor is it of any importance: it is certain, it was a good angel: "an angel of God", as the Ethiopic version reads; since he came from heaven, and was one of the angels of heaven, sent by God on this occasion; and it is clear also, that he was in a visible form, and was seen by Christ, since he is said to appear to him:

strengthening him; under his present distress, against the terrors of Satan, and the fears of death, by assuring him of the divine favour, as man, and of the fulfilment of the promises to him to stand by him, assist, strengthen, and carry him through what was before him; and by observing to him the glory and honour he should be crowned with, after his sufferings and death, find the complete salvation of his people, which would be obtained hereby, and which was the joy set before him; and which animated him, as man, to bear the cross, and despise the shame with a brave and heroic Spirit. Now, though God the Father could have strengthened the human nature of Christ, without making use of an angel; and Christ could have strengthened it himself, by his divine nature, to which it was united; but the human nature was to be brought into so low a condition, and to be left to itself, as to stand in need of the assistance of an angel: and this shows not only the ministration of angels to Christ, as man, but that he was at this present time made a little lower than the angels, who was the Creator and Lord of them; as he afterwards more apparently was, through the sufferings of death.

Gill: Luk 22:44 - And being in an agony // he prayed more earnestly // and his sweat was, as it were, great drops of blood falling to the ground And being in an agony,.... Or in a conflict, and combat; that is, with thee devil, who now appeared visibly to him, in an horrible form: after his tem...

And being in an agony,.... Or in a conflict, and combat; that is, with thee devil, who now appeared visibly to him, in an horrible form: after his temptations in the wilderness Satan left him for a season, till another opportunity should offer; and now it did; now the prince of this world came to him; see Luk 4:13 and attacked him in a garden, where the first onset on human nature was made: and now began the battle between the two combatants, the serpent, and the seed of the woman; which issued in the destruction of Satan, and thee recovery of mankind. The Arabic version leaves out this clause; and the Syriac version renders it, "being in fear"; and to the same purpose are the Persic and Ethiopic versions; that is, of death; and must be understood of a sinless fear of death in his human nature, to which death, being a dissolution of it, must be disagreeable; though not death, barely considered, was the cause of this fear, distress, and agony he was in; but as it was to be inflicted on him for the sins of his people, which he bore, and as it was the curse of the law, and the effect of divine wrath and displeasure:

he prayed more earnestly; repeating the words he had said before with great eagerness and importunity, with intenseness of mind, and fervour of Spirit, with strong crying, and tears to him that was able to save him from death, Heb 5:7

and his sweat was, as it were, great drops of blood falling to the ground. This account of Christ's bloody sweat is only given by Luke, who being a physician, as is thought, more diligently recorded things which belonged to his profession to take cognizance of; nor should it be any objection to the truth and credibility of this fact, that it is not mentioned by the other evangelists, since it is no unusual thing with them for one to record that which is omitted by another; nor that this is wanting in some Greek and Latin copies, as Jerom w and Hilary x observe; since it was expunged, as is supposed, either by some orthodox persons, who weakly thought it might seem to favour the Arians, who denied that Christ was of the same impassible nature with the Father; or rather by the Armenians, or by a set of men called "Aphthartodocetae", who asserted the human nature of Christ to be incorruptible: but certain it is, that it is in the most ancient and approved copies, and in all the Oriental versions, and therefore to be retained; to which may be added, that it is taken notice of, not to mention others, by those two early writers, Justin Martyr y, and Irenaeus z; nor should its being so strange and unusual a sweat at all discredit the history of it, since there have been instances of this kind arising from various causes; and if there had been none, since the case of our Lord was singular, it ought to be credited. This bloody sweat did not arise from a cachexy, or ill state of body, which has sometimes been the cause of it, as Aristotle observes, who says a, that the blood sometimes becomes sanious, and so serous, insomuch that some have been covered with a "bloody sweat": and in another place he says b, that through an ill habit of body it has happened to some, that they have sweat a bloody excrement. Bartholinus produces instances in plagues and fevers c; but nothing of this kind appears in Christ, whose body was hale and robust, free from distempers and diseases, as it was proper it should, in order to do the work, and endure the sufferings he did; nor did it arise from any external heat, or a fatiguing journey. The above writer d a relates, from Actuarius, a story of a young man that had little globes of blood upon his skin, by sweat, through the heat of the sun, and a laborious journey. Christ's walk from Jerusalem to the garden was but a short one; and it was in the night when he had this sweat, and a cold night too; see Joh 18:18, it rather arose from the agony in which he was, before related: persons in an agony, or fit of trembling, sweat much, as Aristotle observes e; but to sweat blood is unusual. This might be occasioned by his vehement striving and wrestling with God in prayer, since the account follows immediately upon that; and might be owing to his strong cries, to the intenseness and fervour of his mind, and the commotion of the animal spirits, which was now very great, as some have thought; or, as others, to the fear of death, as it was set before him in so dreadful a view, and attended with such horrible circumstances. Thuanus f, a very grave and credible historian, reports of a governor of a certain garrison, who being, by a stratagem, decoyed from thence, and taken captive, and threatened with an ignominious death, was so affected with it, that he sweat a "bloody sweat" all over his body. And the same author g relates of a young man of Florence, who being, by the order of Pope Sixtus the Fifth, condemned, as he was led along to be executed, through the vehemence of his grief discharged blood instead of sweat, all over his body: and Maldonate, upon this passage, reports, that he had heard it from some who saw, or knew it, that at Paris, a man, robust, and in good health, hearing that a capital sentence was pronounced upon him, was, at once, all over in a bloody sweat: which instances show, that grief, surprise, and fear, have sometimes had such an effect on men; but it was not mere fear of death, and trouble of mind, concerning that, which thus wrought on our Lord, but the sense he had of the sins of his people, which were imputed to him, and the curse of the righteous law of God, which he endured, and especially the wrath of God, which was let into his soul: though some have thought this was owing to the conflict Christ had with the old serpent the devil; who, as before observed, now appeared to him in a frightful forth: and very remarkable is the passage which Dr. Lightfoot, and others, have cited from Diodorus Siculus, who reports of a certain country, that there are serpents in it, by whose bites are procured very painful deaths; and that grievous pains seize the person bitten, and also "a flow of sweat like blood". And other writers h make mention of a kind of asp, or serpent, called "Haemorrhois"; which, when it bites a man, causes him to sweat blood: and such a bloody sweat it should seem was occasioned by the bite of the old serpent Satan, now nibbling at Christ's heel, which was to be bruised by him: but of all the reasons and causes of this uncommon sweat, that of Clotzius is the most strange, that it should arise from the angels comforting and strengthening him, and from the cheerfulness and fortitude of his mind. This writer observes, that as fear and sorrow congeal the blood, alacrity and fortitude move it; and being moved, heat it, and drive it to the outward parts, and open a way for it through the pores: and this he thinks may be confirmed from the fruit and effect of Christ's prayer, which was very earnest, and was heard, as is said in Heb 5:7 when he was delivered from fear; which deliverance produced joy, and this joy issued in the bloody sweat. Some think the words do not necessarily imply, that this sweat was blood, or that there was blood in it; only that his sweat, as it came out of his body, and fell on the ground, was so large, and thick, and viscous, that it looked like drops, or clots of blood; but the case rather seems to be this, that the pores of Christ's body were so opened, that along with sweat came out blood, which flowed from him very largely; and as it fell on the ground, he being fallen on his face to the earth, it was so congealed by the cold in the night season, that it became really, as the word signifies, clots of blood upon the earth. The Persic version, different from all others, reads, "his tears, like blood, fell by drops upon the ground". This agony, and bloody sweat of Christ, prove the truth of his human nature; the sweat shows that he had a true and real body, as other men; the anxiety of his mind, that he had a reasonable soul capable of grief and sorrow, as human souls are; and they also prove his being made sin and a curse for us, and his sustaining our sins, and the wrath of God: nor could it be at all unsuitable to him, and unworthy of him, to sweat in this manner, whose blood was to be shed for the sins of his people, and who came by blood and water, and from whom both were to flow; signifying, that both sanctification and justification are from him.

Gill: Luk 22:45 - And when he rose from prayer // and was come to his disciples // he found them sleeping for sorrow And when he rose from prayer,.... The Syriac version reads, "from his prayer", having finished it; and the Persic and Ethiopic versions read, "from th...

And when he rose from prayer,.... The Syriac version reads, "from his prayer", having finished it; and the Persic and Ethiopic versions read, "from the place of prayer", or where he prayed:

and was come to his disciples; to the three, which he had left about the distance of a stone's cast:

he found them sleeping for sorrow; on his account; for he had signified unto them, how exceeding sorrowful he was; and they might perceive by his looks and gestures, the anxiety and distress of mind he was in, which must needs affect them; and besides, he had given them some intimations of his being to be betrayed by one of them, and of his sufferings and death, and speedy departure from them; and because of these things, sorrow had filled their hearts, and this had induced heaviness and sleep upon them; See Gill on Mat 26:40.

Gill: Luk 22:46 - And said unto them, why sleep ye // rise and pray, lest ye enter into temptation And said unto them, why sleep ye?.... The Arabic version prefaces this with these words, "and he awaked them"; and then rebuked them for sleeping, add...

And said unto them, why sleep ye?.... The Arabic version prefaces this with these words, "and he awaked them"; and then rebuked them for sleeping, adding,

rise and pray, lest ye enter into temptation; together with words recorded in Mat 26:45.

Gill: Luk 22:47 - And while he yet spake // behold a multitude // and he that was called Judas // one of the twelve // went before them // and drew near unto Jesus to kiss him And while he yet spake,.... The above words to his disciples, behold a multitude. The Persic version adds, "of Jews, with arrows, swords, and spear...

And while he yet spake,.... The above words to his disciples,

behold a multitude. The Persic version adds, "of Jews, with arrows, swords, and spears"; but the multitude consisted partly of Roman soldiers, and partly of the officers of the chief priests:

and he that was called Judas: and sometimes Iscariot, to distinguish him from another Judas, who also was of the number of the apostles:

one of the twelve; disciples of Christ, whom he had chosen, called, and ordained:

went before them; as their guide, to show them where Jesus was, and to point him out unto them; see Act 1:16

and drew near unto Jesus to kiss him; that being the signal he had given them, by which they should know him. The Syriac version here adds, "for this sign he had given to them, whomsoever I shall kiss, the same is he": and so likewise the Persic and Ethiopic versions, adding also this, "lay hold upon him"; but the whole seems to be transcribed from Mat 26:48.

Gill: Luk 22:48 - But Jesus said unto him, Judas // betrayest thou the son of man with a kiss But Jesus said unto him, Judas,.... Calling him by his name, that he might know he knew him, and to aggravate his sin; what, Judas, my apostle, my fri...

But Jesus said unto him, Judas,.... Calling him by his name, that he might know he knew him, and to aggravate his sin; what, Judas, my apostle, my friend, my familiar friend, in whom I trusted, or with whom I trusted all my worldly affairs,

betrayest thou the son of man with a kiss! who assumed human nature for the good of mankind, who is the Messiah spoken of by the prophets, under the character of the son of man, and who is holy, harmless, and never did any mortal man any hurt or injury; and what, betray such an one into the hands of his most implacable adversaries, and in such an hypocritical and deceitful way! all which Christ said, to show he was no stranger to what he was about to do.

Gill: Luk 22:49 - When they which were about him // saw what would follow // they said unto him, Lord, shall we smite with the sword When they which were about him,.... That is, the eleven disciples that were about Christ, and with him in the garden: saw what would follow; that t...

When they which were about him,.... That is, the eleven disciples that were about Christ, and with him in the garden:

saw what would follow; that their Lord and master was about to be betrayed by Judas, and would be seized, and carried away by the multitude, that were with him:

they said unto him, Lord, shall we smite with the sword? or "swords", as the Syriac and Persic versions read; with the two swords which they had along with them. This they said, not being thoroughly acquainted with the mind of Christ in this matter, whether they should use the temporal sword or not; and might choose to show this forwardness to stand by him, and defend him, remembering how lately they had said, that though they died with him, they would not deny him: and might, no doubt, be thoroughly exasperated and provoked to see Judas at the head of such a mob, with swords and staves, and burned with true zeal for their Lord and master; and might be the more spirited up to this, by observing, that the men fell backwards to the ground, upon Christ's saying that he was the person they sought; at least their dependence was upon the exertion of his almighty power; for they could never otherwise imagine that eleven men, with two swords only, would be able to defend him, and rescue him out of the hands of such a multitude.

Gill: Luk 22:50 - And one of them smote the servant of the high priest // and cut off his right ear And one of them smote the servant of the high priest,.... The person that drew his sword, and performed this daring action, not waiting for an answer ...

And one of them smote the servant of the high priest,.... The person that drew his sword, and performed this daring action, not waiting for an answer from Christ, was Peter, and the high priest's servant, that he smote, was Malchus; both which we learn from Joh 18:10

and cut off his right ear; he aimed, no doubt, at his head, but missing his blow, took off his right ear. It is very likely, that this servant was very busy and forward to lay hold on Christ, and showed much virulence, and great malignity; and therefore Peter singled him out, and levelled his blow at him.

Gill: Luk 22:51 - And Jesus answered and said // suffer ye thus far // and he touched his ear and healed him And Jesus answered and said,.... Not to the question of the disciples, but either to Peter, who had done this rash action; and so the Persic and Ethio...

And Jesus answered and said,.... Not to the question of the disciples, but either to Peter, who had done this rash action; and so the Persic and Ethiopic versions add, "to him"; or else to the multitude,

suffer ye thus far; or to them both, to Peter to stop his hand, to proceed no further, but put up his sword; and so the Arabic version reads, "refrain thyself"; and to the multitude to be easy, and not revenge the affront that was given them: and in order to pacify them, "he went to the wounded man", as the Persic version inserts,

and he touched his ear and healed him; which shows, that though the human nature of Christ was in a very low condition, yet he still retained the power of doing miracles; and also his great humanity, by which example be confirmed his precept of doing good to enemies; and likewise hereby gave full proof of his willingness to be apprehended by them; for otherwise, he that wrought such a miracle as this, could easily have delivered himself out of their hands; and one would have thought this would have put a stop to them, and have convinced them of the truth of his being a divine person, and the Messiah.

Gill: Luk 22:52 - Then Jesus said unto the chief priests // the captains of the temple // And the elders which were come to him // Be ye come out as against a thief, with swords and staves Then Jesus said unto the chief priests,.... After he had wrought this miracle, and had quieted the mob, and restrained them from falling upon the apos...

Then Jesus said unto the chief priests,.... After he had wrought this miracle, and had quieted the mob, and restrained them from falling upon the apostles, and cutting them to pieces, which in all likelihood they would otherwise have done; he addressed himself to "the chief priests", who were members of the Jewish sanhedrim, and

the captains of the temple; See Gill on Luk 22:4.

And the elders which were come to him; which came along with Judas and the multitude, in order to see things done to their mind, and to animate both Judas and the soldiers and their officers, by their presence, lest they should come without him, as they had before done, Joh 7:45.

Be ye come out as against a thief, with swords and staves? See Gill on Mat 26:55.

Gill: Luk 22:53 - When I was daily with you in the temple // ye stretched forth no hands against me // but this is your hour // and the power of darkness When I was daily with you in the temple,.... As he had been for some days past, teaching the people, and disputing with them, the chief priests, &c. ...

When I was daily with you in the temple,.... As he had been for some days past, teaching the people, and disputing with them, the chief priests, &c.

ye stretched forth no hands against me; to lay hold upon him, and kill him; the reason was, because his time was not come, and they had no licence or permission to hurt him, or any power given them against him from above:

but this is your hour; the time was now come for the betraying of him by Judas; for the seizing and apprehending him by the Roman soldiers and officers; and for the delivery of him into the hands of the "chief" priests and elders; and for them to insult, mock, buffet, scourge him, and spit upon him: and for the crucifixion of him, and putting him to death: the hour fixed for this was now come; it was now, and not before, and therefore they could not lay hold on him, and do to him what they listed, but now they might; yet this was but an hour, a short time that they had to triumph over him, in Caiaphas's palace, and Pilate's hall, upon the cross, and in the grave; for on the third day he arose again, notwithstanding all the precautions they took, and is ascended to heaven, and is received there, and is out of their reach: and since then, it has been his hour to take vengeance on them; on their nation, city, and temple, for their disbelief, rejection, and ill usage of him; and it will be likewise his hour at the day of judgment, when they shall look on him whom they have pierced, and mourn; and hide their faces from him, and call to the mountains to cover them, and when they will be punished with everlasting destruction from his presence: he adds,

and the power of darkness. The Persic version reads, "the power of your darkness"; that is, either the power granted to them, who were darkness itself, born and brought up in darkness; were walking in darkness, and in the ignorance of their minds; and did works of darkness, and shunned the light, because their deeds were evil; and for which reason they now chose the night, to execute their black designs upon Christ: or rather, the power of the prince of darkness is here meant; that power which he usurped, and was now permitted him to exercise against Christ: and so the Ethiopic version renders it, "the power of the lord of darkness"; who was, once an angel of light, but now full of darkness, and who darkens the minds of men, and for whom blackness of darkness is reserved: the Jews were used to call the evil angels by this name; for so they say i,

"the destroying angels are called, חשך ואפלה, "darkness, and thick darkness".''

The sense of the whole passage is, that now was the time come, that Christ should be delivered up into the hands of wicked men and devils; that the former should have him in their power, and triumph over him for a season; and that hell was now let loose, and all the infernal powers were about him, throwing their poisoned arrows and fiery darts at him; all which Christ endured, to deliver his people from the present evil world, from the wrath of God, the curses of the law, and from the power of darkness.

Gill: Luk 22:54 - Then took they him, and led him // and brought him into the high priest's house // And Peter followed afar off Then took they him, and led him,.... The band of soldiers, the captain, and the officers of the Jews, laid hold on Jesus, and bound him, Joh 18:12 and...

Then took they him, and led him,.... The band of soldiers, the captain, and the officers of the Jews, laid hold on Jesus, and bound him, Joh 18:12 and led him out of the garden; notwithstanding the miracle he had wrought, and the humanity he had shown in healing the servant's ear; and notwithstanding his moving address to the chiefs of them; and indeed, this was a confirmation of his last words; for by this it appeared, that now was their time, and power was given to them, as the emissaries of Satan, to act against him:

and brought him into the high priest's house; where the sanhedrim were assembled; but this was not in the temple where they used to sit: it is true, indeed, that the chamber in the temple, called the chamber "Parhedrin", or "Palhedrin", was, בית דירה, "the dwelling house" of the high priest, seven days before the day of atonement k; and this was also called the "chamber of the counsellors" l; so that had the time of year agreed, it might have been thought that this was the place that Jesus was led to; but here the high priest did not usually dwell, and it is manifestly distinguished from his own house: for it is said m,

"seven days before the day of atonement, they separate, or remove the high priest, מביתו•, "from his house", to the chamber of "Palhedrin";''

See Gill on Mat 26:3.

And Peter followed afar off; See Gill on Mat 26:58.

Gill: Luk 22:55 - And when they had kindled a fire in the midst of the hall // and were sat down together // Peter sat down among them And when they had kindled a fire in the midst of the hall,.... It being cold in the night time, though it was at the passover, and the beginning of ha...

And when they had kindled a fire in the midst of the hall,.... It being cold in the night time, though it was at the passover, and the beginning of harvest, the servants and officers of the high priest made a fire in the middle of the hall, whilst Jesus was examining before the sanhedrim, at the other end of it:

and were sat down together; about it, as the Syriac version adds, to warm themselves:

Peter sat down among them; for the same purpose, and as if he was one of them; and which he might do, not only to warm himself, but to prevent his being taken notice of, and suspected; as he might have been, had he been loitering about.

Gill: Luk 22:56 - But a certain maid beheld him // and earnestly looked upon him, and said, this man was also with him But a certain maid beheld him,.... Looked upon him, and took notice of him, and observed his countenance and gesture: as he sat by the fire; or light;...

But a certain maid beheld him,.... Looked upon him, and took notice of him, and observed his countenance and gesture: as he sat by the fire; or light; See Gill on Mar 14:54. And both by the light of the fire, and other lights, which were doubtless in the hall, she discovered something in him, which made her look at him again with some earnestness;

and earnestly looked upon him, and said, this man was also with him; that fellow, that vile and contemptible wretch, now examining before the high priest; thus in a contemptuous manner, as was the custom and style of that nation, she disdained to mention the name of Jesus; though the Persic version here expresses it; and her sense was, that Peter was one of that clan, a disciple of his, and was only come hither as a spy.

Gill: Luk 22:57 - And he denied him, saying, woman, I know him not. And he denied him, saying, woman, I know him not. Startled at the maid's positive assertion, and knowing not how to clear himself any other way, round...

And he denied him, saying, woman, I know him not. Startled at the maid's positive assertion, and knowing not how to clear himself any other way, roundly, and at once, denied that Jesus was his master; or that he was a disciple of his; or that he knew any thing of him, or had any acquaintance with him: and thus he that had said he would die with him, rather than deny him, is frighten at a servant maid, and denies him upon the first attack upon him.

Gill: Luk 22:58 - And after a little while // another saw him // thou art also of them // and Peter said, man, I am not And after a little while,.... A quarter, or half an hour after, within an hour at least: another saw him; not another maid, but another man, as app...

And after a little while,.... A quarter, or half an hour after, within an hour at least:

another saw him; not another maid, but another man, as appears from the answer; though the Syriac and Persic versions leave out the word man, it may be because Matthew and Mark represent the person, on account of whose words Peter denied Christ a second time, to be another maid; but then it is to be observed, that that maid did not speak directly to Peter, as this person did, but to those that were present, or that stood by: and one of these taking the hint from her, looked at him, and said,

thou art also of them; of the disciples of Jesus of Nazareth; thou belongest to that company; thou art certainly one of his followers;

and Peter said, man, I am not. This was after he had been out into the porch, and had mused upon it, and was come in again, but had not courage enough to withstand the temptation, and especially now, being attacked by a man; and so a second time denies that Christ was his master, or that he was a disciple of his.

Gill: Luk 22:59 - And about the space of one hour after // another confidently affirmed // saying of a truth, this fellow also was with him // for he is a Galilean And about the space of one hour after,.... After the first assault, or rather after the second: another confidently affirmed; who was one of them t...

And about the space of one hour after,.... After the first assault, or rather after the second:

another confidently affirmed; who was one of them that stood by the fireside, and heard what had passed; and not only so, but was a kinsman to him, whose ear Peter had cut off, and who had seen him in the garden with Christ, and therefore with all assurance asserted it, as a matter of fact, as an unquestionable truth, and beyond all doubt:

saying of a truth, this fellow also was with him; a disciple and follower of Jesus, and was with him when he was apprehended; I saw him there, and it may be depended on as a truth; and then added this reason,

for he is a Galilean; you may be assured of this yourselves, his speech betrays him; you may know him by his language, and which confirms my assertion.

Gill: Luk 22:60 - And Peter said, man, I know not what thou sayest // and immediately while he yet spake // the cock crew And Peter said, man, I know not what thou sayest,.... Suggesting, that he was so far from being a follower of Jesus, or a disciple of his, and from ha...

And Peter said, man, I know not what thou sayest,.... Suggesting, that he was so far from being a follower of Jesus, or a disciple of his, and from having any personal acquaintance with him, that he did not know what he was talking of, or at least could not understand what he meant by this harangue, or by talking after this manner about him; and then began to curse and swear, and wish the most dreadful things to befall him, if he knew any thing of Jesus of Nazareth:

and immediately while he yet spake: in this shocking manner, with his mouth full of oaths, curses, and imprecations:

the cock crew; the second time, Mar 14:72.

Gill: Luk 22:61 - And the Lord turned // and looked upon Peter // and Peter remembered the word of the Lord, how he had said unto him, before the cock crow, thou shall deny me thrice And the Lord turned,.... Himself, his back being to Peter, whilst he was examining before the high priest; but he knew full well what was doing, what ...

And the Lord turned,.... Himself, his back being to Peter, whilst he was examining before the high priest; but he knew full well what was doing, what had been said to Peter, and how often he had denied him:

and looked upon Peter; with his bodily eyes, with great earnestness, expressing in his looks concern and pity for him; for it was a look, not of wrath and resentment, but of love and mercy, and power went along with it; it was not only a signal to Peter, to put him in remembrance of what he had said, but it was a melting look to him, and a means of convincing and humbling him, and of bringing him to repentance:

and Peter remembered the word of the Lord, how he had said unto him, before the cock crow, thou shall deny me thrice; See Gill on Mat 26:75.

Gill: Luk 22:62 - And Peter went out and wept bitterly. And Peter went out and wept bitterly. See Gill on Mat 26:75.

And Peter went out and wept bitterly. See Gill on Mat 26:75.

Gill: Luk 22:63 - And the men that held Jesus // mocked him // and smote him And the men that held Jesus,.... Whilst he was before the sanhedrim; and were either the Roman soldiers, or the servants of the high priest, who kept ...

And the men that held Jesus,.... Whilst he was before the sanhedrim; and were either the Roman soldiers, or the servants of the high priest, who kept hold of him all the while, lest he should get away; though there was no reason for it; his time was come, nor would he escape out of their hands, though he could easily have rescued himself:

mocked him; insulted him, and gave him very opprobrious language, and used him in a very scurrilous way, and even spit upon him;

and smote him. This clause is left out in the Syriac, Arabic, and Persic versions; the word used, signifies plucking off the skin; they pinched him, and tore off his flesh with their nails; they plucked the hairs of his beard, and the skin of his cheeks along with them, and so fulfilled Isa 50:6.

Gill: Luk 22:64 - And when they had blindfolded him // they struck him on the face // and asked him, saying, prophesy, who is it that smote thee And when they had blindfolded him,.... Or put a veil, or linen cloth over his eyes, as children do at play, to make themselves some sport with him: ...

And when they had blindfolded him,.... Or put a veil, or linen cloth over his eyes, as children do at play, to make themselves some sport with him:

they struck him on the face; on that part of it which was not covered, either with their hands, or with rods:

and asked him, saying, prophesy, who is it that smote thee? hereby deriding his prophetic office, and using such language as children do at blindman's buff; See Gill on Mat 26:68.

Gill: Luk 22:65 - And many other things blasphemously spake they // against him And many other things blasphemously spake they,.... As denying and ridiculing his deity, and divine sonship; mocking at, and burlesquing his offices, ...

And many other things blasphemously spake they,.... As denying and ridiculing his deity, and divine sonship; mocking at, and burlesquing his offices, of prophet, priest, and king; asserting him to be a mere man, and a very wicked one; a profane sinner, a glutton, and a winebibber; a sabbath breaker, a blasphemer, and a seditious person; and one that had a devil, or dealt with familiar spirits: and thus spake they

against him; his person, office, and character.

Gill: Luk 22:66 - And as soon as it was day // The elders of the people // and the chief priests and the Scribes came together // and led him into their council And as soon as it was day,.... See Gill on Mat 27:1. The elders of the people; or "the presbytery of the people", that were chosen from among the ...

And as soon as it was day,.... See Gill on Mat 27:1.

The elders of the people; or "the presbytery of the people", that were chosen from among the people to sit in the sanhedrim; the Israelites, as distinct from priests and Levites, and the doctors:

and the chief priests and the Scribes came together; which made up the great sanhedrim, or council of the nation:

and led him into their council; or sanhedrim, the place where the sanhedrim sat, which was in the temple, and in the chamber called לשכת הגזית, "the paved stone chamber" n; here they usually met, and so the Persic version renders it, "where their congregation was daily there".

Gill: Luk 22:67 - Saying, art thou the Christ // And he said unto them, if I tell you, you will not believe Saying, art thou the Christ,.... The Messiah, promised and prophesied of by Moses, and all the prophets, and long expected by us: "tell us". The Ethio...

Saying, art thou the Christ,.... The Messiah, promised and prophesied of by Moses, and all the prophets, and long expected by us: "tell us". The Ethiopic version adds, openly; tell us frankly, freely, plainly, as in Joh 10:24.

And he said unto them, if I tell you, you will not believe. The Vulgate Latin and Syriac versions read, "will not believe me"; neither what he said, nor that he was the Messiah; they were determined not to believe in him, and receive him as such; their unbelief was wilful, obstinate, and invincible: they were proof against all arguments, evidence, and demonstration itself.

Gill: Luk 22:68 - And if I also ask you // you will not answer me And if I also ask you,.... Or enter into a discourse on this subject, and require an answer to the arguments, proving me to be the Messiah, or desire ...

And if I also ask you,.... Or enter into a discourse on this subject, and require an answer to the arguments, proving me to be the Messiah, or desire to know what objections can be made thereunto:

you will not answer me: fairly and directly, or go into a serious and sober conversation on this head: nor let me "go"; or dismiss me, though I should appear to be the Messiah, or ever so free from the charge of blasphemy and sedition; you are resolved, right or wrong, to detain me in bonds, and take away my life; so that it signifies nothing saying any thing to you.

Gill: Luk 22:69 - Hereafter shall the son of man // sit on the right hand of the power of God Hereafter shall the son of man,.... Meaning himself, who was truly man, and then in a low and mean form, and thought by the Jews to be a mere man; tho...

Hereafter shall the son of man,.... Meaning himself, who was truly man, and then in a low and mean form, and thought by the Jews to be a mere man; though this character was known by them to belong to the Messiah, especially what follows; as that he should

sit on the right hand of the power of God: as he did after his resurrection, and ascension, and which was manifest by the destruction of their nation, city, and temple; See Gill on Mat 27:64.

Gill: Luk 22:70 - Then said they all // art thou the Son of God? // and he said unto them, ye say that I am Then said they all,.... The whole sanhedrim, with one voice, being greedy to lay hold on, and improve these words, that they might have something to l...

Then said they all,.... The whole sanhedrim, with one voice, being greedy to lay hold on, and improve these words, that they might have something to lay to his charge:

art thou the Son of God? for they knew that the Messiah, or the son of man, that was to sit at the right hand of God, and come in the clouds of heaven, was the Son of God:

and he said unto them, ye say that I am; or rather the words may be rendered, "ye say it", and ye say right; it is the very truth: "for I am"; that is, "the Son of God", as the Ethiopic version here adds; which sense agrees with Mar 14:62 and the following words seem to require this sense and version.

Gill: Luk 22:71 - And they said // what need we any further witness // for we ourselves have heard of his own mouth And they said,.... That is, the council, as the Persic version reads; some of the members of the sanhedrim, or the whole body of them: what need we...

And they said,.... That is, the council, as the Persic version reads; some of the members of the sanhedrim, or the whole body of them:

what need we any further witness? or give any further trouble in getting witnesses, and hearing them:

for we ourselves have heard of his own mouth: his blasphemy, and what amounts to a sufficient charge of that kind; upon which they all pronounced him worthy of death, and determined to deliver him into the hands of Pilate the Roman governor, in order to pass sentence on him, and put him to death.

buka semua
Tafsiran/Catatan -- Catatan Ayat / Catatan Kaki

NET Notes: Luk 22:1 The Feast of Unleavened Bread was a week long celebration that followed the day of Passover, so one name was used for both feasts (Exod 12:1-20; 23:15...

NET Notes: Luk 22:2 The suggestion here is that Jesus was too popular to openly arrest him. The verb were trying is imperfect. It suggests, in this context, that they wer...

NET Notes: Luk 22:3 Grk “Iscariot, being of the number of the twelve.”

NET Notes: Luk 22:4 Grk “how he might hand him over to them,” in the sense of “betray him.”

NET Notes: Luk 22:5 Matt 26:15 states the amount of money they gave Judas was thirty pieces of silver (see also Matt 27:3-4; Zech 11:12-13).

NET Notes: Luk 22:6 The leaders wanted to do this quietly, when no crowd was present, so no public uproar would result (cf. v. 21:38; 22:2).

NET Notes: Luk 22:7 Generally the feast of Unleavened Bread would refer to Nisan 15 (Friday), but the following reference to the sacrifice of the Passover lamb indicates ...

NET Notes: Luk 22:8 Grk “for us, so that we may eat.”

NET Notes: Luk 22:9 In the Greek text this a deliberative subjunctive.

NET Notes: Luk 22:10 Jesus is portrayed throughout Luke 22-23 as very aware of what will happen, almost directing events. Here this is indicated by his prediction that a m...

NET Notes: Luk 22:11 Grk “to the master of the household,” referring to one who owns and manages the household, including family, servants, and slaves (L&N...

NET Notes: Luk 22:13 The author’s note that the disciples found things just as he had told them shows that Jesus’ word could be trusted.

NET Notes: Luk 22:14 Grk “the apostles with him.”

NET Notes: Luk 22:15 This phrase parallels a Hebrew infinitive absolute and serves to underline Jesus’ enthusiasm for holding this meal (BDF §198.6).

NET Notes: Luk 22:16 The kingdom of God here refers to the kingdom in all its power. See Luke 17:20-37.

NET Notes: Luk 22:17 Then he took a cup. Only Luke mentions two cups at this meal; the other synoptic gospels (Matt, Mark) mention only one. This is the first of the two. ...

NET Notes: Luk 22:18 Until the kingdom of God comes is a reference to the kingdom in all its power. See Luke 17:20-37. Jesus awaits celebration with the arrival of full ki...

NET Notes: Luk 22:19 The language of the phrase given for you alludes to Christ’s death in our place. It is a powerful substitutionary image of what he did for us.

NET Notes: Luk 22:20 Jesus’ death established the forgiveness promised in the new covenant of Jer 31:31. Jesus is reinterpreting the symbolism of the Passover meal, ...

NET Notes: Luk 22:21 The point of Jesus’ comment here is not to identify the specific individual per se, but to indicate that it is one who was close to him – ...

NET Notes: Luk 22:22 Jesus’ death has been determined as a part of God’s plan (Acts 2:22-24).

NET Notes: Luk 22:23 Here καί (kai) has been translated as “so” to indicate the implied result of Jesus’ comments: The disciples begin won...

NET Notes: Luk 22:24 Though the term μείζων (meizwn) here is comparative in form, it is superlative in sense (BDF §244).

NET Notes: Luk 22:25 The title ‘benefactor,’ highlighting grace and meaning something like “helper of the people,” was even given to tyrants (2 Mac...

NET Notes: Luk 22:26 And the leader like the one who serves. Leadership was not to be a matter of privilege and special status, but of service. All social status is levele...

NET Notes: Luk 22:27 Jesus’ example of humble service, as one who serves, shows that the standard for a disciple is different from that of the world. For an example ...

NET Notes: Luk 22:28 Or “continued” (L&N 34.3). Jesus acknowledges the disciples’ faithfulness.

NET Notes: Luk 22:29 Or “I give you the right to rule” (cf. CEV). For this translation of διατίθεμαι β&#...

NET Notes: Luk 22:30 The statement you will sit on thrones judging the twelve tribes of Israel looks at the future authority the Twelve will have when Jesus returns. They ...

NET Notes: Luk 22:31 Satan has demanded permission to put them to the test. The idiom “sift (someone) like wheat” is similar to the English idiom “to pic...

NET Notes: Luk 22:32 Strengthen your brothers refers to Peter helping to strengthen their faith. Jesus quite graciously restores Peter “in advance,” even with ...

NET Notes: Luk 22:33 The confidence Peter has in private (Lord, I am ready…) will wilt under the pressure of the public eye.

NET Notes: Luk 22:34 Once again, Jesus is quite aware that Peter will deny him. Peter, however, is too nonchalant about the possibility of stumbling.

NET Notes: Luk 22:35 Grk “said.”

NET Notes: Luk 22:36 Or possibly “beggar’s bag” (L&N 6.145).

NET Notes: Luk 22:37 Grk “is having its fulfillment.”

NET Notes: Luk 22:38 It is enough. The disciples’ misunderstanding caused Jesus to terminate the discussion.

NET Notes: Luk 22:39 See the note on the Mount of Olives in Luke 19:29.

NET Notes: Luk 22:40 Jesus’ instructions to pray not to fall into temptation is an allusion to Luke 22:28-38, especially 22:31. The temptation is Satan’s chall...

NET Notes: Luk 22:42 With the statement “Not my will but yours be done” Jesus submitted fully to God’s will.

NET Notes: Luk 22:44 Angelic aid is noted elsewhere in the gospels: Matt 4:11 = Mark 1:13.

NET Notes: Luk 22:45 Grk “from grief.” The word “exhausted” is not in the Greek text, but is implied; the disciples have fallen asleep from mental ...

NET Notes: Luk 22:46 Jesus calls the disciples again to prayerful watchfulness with the words “Get up and pray” (see 22:40). The time is full of danger (22:53)...

NET Notes: Luk 22:47 Many mss (D Θ Ë13 700 pm as well as several versional mss) add here, “for this is the sign he gave to them: Whoever I kiss is [the one...

NET Notes: Luk 22:48 Jesus’ comment about betraying the Son of Man with a kiss shows the hypocrisy and blindness of an attempt to cover up sin. On “misused kis...

NET Notes: Luk 22:49 “Should we use our swords?” The disciples’ effort to defend Jesus recalls Luke 22:35-38. One individual did not wait for the answer.

NET Notes: Luk 22:50 See the note on the word “slave” in 7:2.

NET Notes: Luk 22:51 When Jesus healed the man’s ear he showed grace even to those who hated him, following his own teaching (Luke 6:27-36).

NET Notes: Luk 22:52 Or “a revolutionary.” This term can refer to one who stirs up rebellion: BDAG 594 s.v. λῃστής 2 has “...

NET Notes: Luk 22:53 Or “authority,” “domain.”

NET Notes: Luk 22:54 Putting all the gospel accounts together, there is a brief encounter with Annas (brought him into the high priest’s house, here and John 18:13, ...

NET Notes: Luk 22:56 The Greek term here is παιδίσκη (paidiskh), referring to a slave girl or slave woman.

NET Notes: Luk 22:57 The expression “I do not know him” had an idiomatic use in Jewish ban formulas in the synagogue and could mean, “I have nothing to d...

NET Notes: Luk 22:58 Here and in v. 60 “Man” is used as a neutral form of address to a stranger.

NET Notes: Luk 22:59 According to Mark 14:70 it was Peter’s accent that gave him away as a Galilean.

NET Notes: Luk 22:60 A real rooster crowing is probably in view here (rather than the Roman trumpet call known as gallicinium), in part due to the fact that Mark 14:72 men...

NET Notes: Luk 22:61 “The word of the Lord” is a technical expression in OT literature, often referring to a divine prophetic utterance (e.g., Gen 15:1, Isa 1:...

NET Notes: Luk 22:62 When Peter went out and wept bitterly it shows he really did not want to fail here and was deeply grieved that he had.

NET Notes: Luk 22:63 Grk “him”; the referent (Jesus) has been specified in the translation for clarity.

NET Notes: Luk 22:64 Who hit you? This is a variation of one of three ancient games that involved blindfolds.

NET Notes: Luk 22:65 Or “insulting.” Luke uses a strong word here; it means “to revile, to defame, to blaspheme” (L&N 33.400).

NET Notes: Luk 22:66 Their council is probably a reference to the Jewish Sanhedrin, the council of seventy leaders.

NET Notes: Luk 22:67 The negation in the Greek text is the strongest possible (οὐ μή, ou mh).

NET Notes: Luk 22:68 The negation in the Greek text is the strongest possible (οὐ μή, ou mh).

NET Notes: Luk 22:69 The expression the right hand of the power of God is a circumlocution for referring to God. Such indirect references to God were common in 1st century...

NET Notes: Luk 22:70 Jesus’ reply, “You say that I am,” was not a denial, but a way of giving a qualified positive response: “You have said it, but...

NET Notes: Luk 22:71 Grk “from his own mouth” (an idiom).

Geneva Bible: Luk 22:1 Now the ( 1 ) feast of unleavened bread drew nigh, which is called the Passover. ( 1 ) Christ is taken upon the day of the Passover rather by the pro...

Geneva Bible: Luk 22:3 ( 2 ) Then entered Satan into Judas surnamed Iscariot, being of the number of the twelve. ( 2 ) God by his wonderful providence causes him to be the ...

Geneva Bible: Luk 22:4 And he went his way, and communed with the chief priests and ( a ) captains, how he might betray him unto them. ( a ) Those that had the charge of ke...

Geneva Bible: Luk 22:6 And he promised, and sought opportunity to betray him unto them in the ( b ) absence of the multitude. ( b ) Without tumult, doing it without the kno...

Geneva Bible: Luk 22:7 ( 3 ) Then came the day of unleavened bread, when the passover ( c ) must be killed. ( 3 ) Christ teaches his disciples by an obvious miracle that al...

Geneva Bible: Luk 22:8 And he sent Peter and John, saying, Go and prepare us the ( d ) passover, that we may eat. ( d ) The lamb which was the symbol of the passover: And t...

Geneva Bible: Luk 22:14 ( 4 ) And when the ( e ) hour was come, he sat down, and the twelve apostles with him. ( 4 ) Christ, having ended the passover according to the order...

Geneva Bible: Luk 22:15 And he said unto them, With desire I have desired to eat this passover with you before I ( f ) suffer: ( f ) I am put to death.

Geneva Bible: Luk 22:19 ( 5 ) And he took bread, and gave thanks, and brake [it], and gave unto them, saying, This is my body which is given for you: this do in remembrance o...

Geneva Bible: Luk 22:20 Likewise also the cup after supper, saying, This ( g ) cup [is] ( h ) the new testament in my blood, which is shed for you. ( g ) Here is a double us...

Geneva Bible: Luk 22:21 ( 6 ) But, behold, the ( i ) hand of him that betrayeth me [is] with me on the table. ( 6 ) Christ shows again that he goes willingly to die, althoug...

Geneva Bible: Luk 22:22 ( 7 ) And truly the Son of man goeth, as it was determined: but woe unto that man by whom he is betrayed! ( 7 ) Although the decree of God's providen...

Geneva Bible: Luk 22:24 ( 8 ) And there was also a strife among them, which of them should be accounted the greatest. ( 8 ) The pastors are not called to rule but to serve.

Geneva Bible: Luk 22:25 And he said unto them, The kings of the Gentiles exercise lordship over them; and they that exercise authority upon them are called ( k ) benefactors....

Geneva Bible: Luk 22:28 ( 9 ) Ye are they which have continued with me in my temptations. ( 9 ) Those who are partakers of the affliction of Christ will also be partakers of...

Geneva Bible: Luk 22:31 ( 10 ) And the Lord said, Simon, Simon, behold, Satan hath desired [to have] you, that he may ( l ) sift [you] as wheat: ( 10 ) We must always think ...

Geneva Bible: Luk 22:32 ( 11 ) But I have prayed for thee, that thy faith fail not: and when thou art converted, strengthen thy brethren. ( 11 ) It is through the prayers of...

Geneva Bible: Luk 22:33 ( 12 ) And he said unto him, Lord, I am ready to go with thee, both into prison, and to death. ( 12 ) In setting before us the grievous example of Pe...

Geneva Bible: Luk 22:36 ( m ) Then said he unto them, But now, he that hath a purse, let him take [it], and likewise [his] scrip: and he that hath no sword, let him sell his ...

Geneva Bible: Luk 22:40 ( 13 ) And when he was at the place, he said unto them, Pray that ye enter not into temptation. ( 13 ) Christ has made death acceptable unto us by ov...

Geneva Bible: Luk 22:41 ( 14 ) And he was withdrawn from them about a stone's cast, and kneeled down, and prayed, ( 14 ) Prayers are a sure help against the most perilous as...

Geneva Bible: Luk 22:44 And being in an ( n ) agony he prayed more earnestly: and his sweat was as it were great ( o ) drops of blood falling down to the ground. ( n ) This ...

Geneva Bible: Luk 22:45 ( 15 ) And when he rose up from prayer, and was come to his disciples, he found them sleeping for sorrow, ( 15 ) Men are utterly sluggish, even in th...

Geneva Bible: Luk 22:47 ( 16 ) And while he yet spake, behold a multitude, and he that was called Judas, one of the twelve, went before them, and drew near unto Jesus to kiss...

Geneva Bible: Luk 22:49 ( 17 ) When they which were about him saw what would follow, they said unto him, Lord, shall we smite with the sword? ( 17 ) That zeal which carries ...

Geneva Bible: Luk 22:52 ( 18 ) Then Jesus said unto the chief priests, and captains of the temple, and the elders, which were come to him, Be ye come out, as against a thief,...

Geneva Bible: Luk 22:53 When I was daily with you in the temple, ye stretched forth no hands against me: but this is your hour, and the ( p ) power of darkness. ( p ) The po...

Geneva Bible: Luk 22:54 Then took they him, and led [him], and brought him into the high priest's house. ( 19 ) And Peter followed afar off. ( 19 ) We have to behold in Pete...

Geneva Bible: Luk 22:63 ( 20 ) And the men that held Jesus mocked him, and smote [him]. ( 20 ) Christ bore the shame that was due for our sins.

Geneva Bible: Luk 22:66 ( 21 ) And as soon as it was day, the elders of the people and the chief priests and the scribes came together, and led him into their council, saying...

buka semua
Tafsiran/Catatan -- Catatan Rentang Ayat

Maclaren: Luk 22:7-20 - A Libation To Jehovah The Lord's Supper Then came the day of unleavened bread, when the passover must be killed. 8. And He sent Peter and John, saying, Go and prepare us t...

Maclaren: Luk 22:14-18 - A Libation To Jehovah II. He Partook, For The Last Time, Of The Passover. Luke 22:14-18 give a glimpse into Christ's heart as He partook, for the last time, of the Passove...

Maclaren: Luk 22:24-37 - A Libation To Jehovah Parting Promises And Warnings And there was also a strife among them, which of them should be accounted the greatest. 25. And He said unto them, The ...

Maclaren: Luk 22:25-26 - A Libation To Jehovah Christ's Ideal Of A Monarch And He said unto them, The kings of the Gentiles exercise lordship over them; and they that exercise authority upon them ...

Maclaren: Luk 22:28 - A Libation To Jehovah The Lonely Christ Ye are they which have continued with Me in My temptations.'--Luke 22:28. WE wonder at the disciples when we read of the unseemly s...

Maclaren: Luk 22:32 - A Libation To Jehovah A Great Fall And A Great Recovery But I have prayed for thee, that thy faith fail not: and when thou art converted, strengthen thy brethren.'--Luke 2...

Maclaren: Luk 22:39-53 - A Libation To Jehovah Gethsemane And: He came out, and went, as He was wont, to the mount of Olives; and His disciples also followed Him. 40. And when He was at the place,...

Maclaren: Luk 22:53 - A Libation To Jehovah The Cross The Victory And Defeat Of Darkness This is your hour, and the power of darkness.'--Luke 22:53. THE darkness was the right time for so dark ...

Maclaren: Luk 22:54-71 - A Libation To Jehovah In The High Priest's Palace Then took they Him, and led Him, and brought Him into the high priest's house. And Peter followed afar off. 55. And when ...

Maclaren: Luk 22:61 - A Libation To Jehovah Christ's Look And the Lord turned and looked upon Peter.'--Luke 22:61. ALL four Evangelists tell the story of Peter's threefold denial and swift repe...

MHCC: Luk 22:1-6 - --Christ knew all men, and had wise and holy ends in taking Judas to be a disciple. How he who knew Christ so well, came to betray him, we are here told...

MHCC: Luk 22:7-18 - --Christ kept the ordinances of the law, particularly that of the passover, to teach us to observe his gospel institutions, and most of all that of the ...

MHCC: Luk 22:19-20 - --The Lord's supper is a sign or memorial of Christ already come, who by dying delivered us; his death is in special manner set before us in that ordina...

MHCC: Luk 22:21-38 - --How unbecoming is the worldly ambition of being the greatest, to the character of a follower of Jesus, who took upon him the form of a servant, and hu...

MHCC: Luk 22:39-46 - --Every description which the evangelists give of the state of mind in which our Lord entered upon this conflict, proves the tremendous nature of the as...

MHCC: Luk 22:47-53 - --Nothing can be a greater affront or grief to the Lord Jesus, than to be betrayed by those who profess to be his followers, and say that they love him....

MHCC: Luk 22:54-62 - --Peter's fall was his denying that he knew Christ, and was his disciple; disowning him because of distress and danger. He that has once told a lie, is ...

MHCC: Luk 22:63-71 - --Those that condemned Jesus for a blasphemer, were the vilest blasphemers. He referred them to his second coming, for the full proof of his being the C...

Matthew Henry: Luk 22:1-6 - -- The year of the redeemed is now come, which had been from eternity fixed in the divine counsels, and long looked for by them that waited for the...

Matthew Henry: Luk 22:7-20 - -- What a hopeful prospect had we of Christ's doing a great deal of good by his preaching in the temple during the feast of unleavened bread, which con...

Matthew Henry: Luk 22:21-38 - -- We have here Christ's discourse with his disciples after supper, much of which is new here; and in St. John's gospel we shall find other additions. ...

Matthew Henry: Luk 22:39-46 - -- We have here the awful story of Christ's agony in the garden, just before he was betrayed, which was largely related by the other evangelists. In ...

Matthew Henry: Luk 22:47-53 - -- Satan, finding himself baffled in his attempts to terrify our Lord Jesus, and so to put him out of the possession of his own soul, betakes himself (...

Matthew Henry: Luk 22:54-62 - -- We have here the melancholy story of Peter's denying his Master, at the time when he was arraigned before the high priest, and those that were of th...

Matthew Henry: Luk 22:63-71 - -- We are here told, as before in the other gospels, I. How our Lord Jesus was abused by the servants of the high priest. The abjects, the rude and...

Barclay: Luk 22:1-6 - "AND SATAN ENTERED INTO JUDAS" It was at Passover time that Jesus came to Jerusalem to die. The Feast of Unleavened Bread is not, strictly speaking, the same thing as the Passove...

Barclay: Luk 22:7-23 - "THE LAST MEAL TOGETHER" Once again Jesus did not leave things until the last moment; his plans were already made. The better class houses had two rooms. The one room was o...

Barclay: Luk 22:24-30 - "STRIFE AMONG THE DISCIPLES OF CHRIST" It is one of the most poignantly tragic things in the gospel story that the disciples could quarrel about precedence in the very shadow of the cross. ...

Barclay: Luk 22:31-38 - "PETER'S TRAGEDY" We take the story of the tragedy of Peter all in one piece. Peter was a strange paradoxical mixture. (i) Even in spite of his denial he was fundament...

Barclay: Luk 22:39-46 - "THY WILL BE DONE" The space within Jerusalem was so limited that there was no room for gardens. Many well-to-do people, therefore, had private gardens out on the Mou...

Barclay: Luk 22:47-53 - "THE TRAITOR'S KISS" Judas had found a way to betray Jesus in such a way that the authorities could come upon him when the crowd were not there. He knew that Jesus was in...

Barclay: Luk 22:54-62 - -- See Comments for Luke 22:31-38

Barclay: Luk 22:63-71 - "MOCKING AND SCOURGING AND TRIAL" During the night Jesus had been brought before the High Priest. That was a private and unofficial examination. Its purpose was for the authorities t...

Constable: Luk 19:28--22:1 - --VI. Jesus' ministry in Jerusalem 19:28--21:38 Luke's account of Jesus' passion highlights Jesus' entry into Jeru...

Constable: Luk 22:1--Joh 1:1 - --VII. Jesus' passion, resurrection, and ascension 22:1--24:53 Luke's unique rendition of the death, burial, and r...

Constable: Luk 22:1-6 - --A. The plot to arrest Jesus 22:1-6 This significant plot is the core around which several other incident...

Constable: Luk 22:1-2 - --1. The leaders' desire 22:1-2 (cf. Matt. 26:1-5; Mark 14:1-2) The leaders of Israel had already ...

Constable: Luk 22:3-6 - --2. Judas' offer 22:3-6 (cf. Matt. 26:14-16; Mark 14:10-11) Luke omitted the story of Jesus' anointing in Bethany (Matt. 26:6-13; Mark 14:3-9; John 12:...

Constable: Luk 22:7-13 - --B. The preparations for the Passover 22:7-13 (cf. Matt. 26:17-19; Mark 14:12-16) Luke recorded more details of these preparations than the other synop...

Constable: Luk 22:14-38 - --C. Events in the upper room 22:14-38 Luke included more information about what Jesus said and did on thi...

Constable: Luk 22:14-18 - --1. The Passover meal 22:14-18

Constable: Luk 22:14 - --The writer's introduction to these events 22:14 (cf. Matt. 26:20; Mark 14:17) Luke conti...

Constable: Luk 22:15-16 - --Jesus' words of welcome 22:15-16 These verses record Jesus' introduction to what followed and are similar to the welcoming words of a host before his ...

Constable: Luk 22:17-18 - --The drinking of the cup 22:17-18 There were four times that participants in the Passover...

Constable: Luk 22:19-20 - --2. The institution of the Lord's Supper 22:19-20 (cf. Matt. 26:26-29; Mark 14:22-25; 1 Cor. 11:23-26) ...

Constable: Luk 22:21-23 - --3. Jesus' announcement of His betrayal 22:21-23 (cf. Matt. 26:21-25; Mark 14:18-21; John 13:21-30) Luke placed Jesus' announcement of His betrayal aft...

Constable: Luk 22:24-30 - --4. Teaching about the disciples' service 22:24-30 Again Luke apparently rearranged the chronolog...

Constable: Luk 22:24-27 - --The disciples' concern for their greatness 22:24-27 Following Jesus' announcement of His self-sacrifice and the announcement of His betrayal, the disc...

Constable: Luk 22:28-30 - --The future role of the Twelve 22:28-30 Jesus balanced the need for humility and service with a promise of future reward. Though the Twelve are in view...

Constable: Luk 22:31-34 - --5. Jesus' announcement of Peter's denial 22:31-34 (cf. Matt. 26:31-35; Mark 14:27-31; John 13:36-38) Luke placed this event next probably because of i...

Constable: Luk 22:35-38 - --6. The opposition to come 22:35-38 This last part of Jesus' conversation with His disciples in the upper room is unique to Luke. It continues the them...

Constable: Luk 22:39-53 - --D. The arrest of Jesus 22:39-53 This section in Luke's Gospel consists of two incidents: Jesus' preparat...

Constable: Luk 22:39-46 - --1. Jesus' preparation in Gethsemane 22:39-46 (cf. Matt. 26:30, 36-46; Mark 14:26, 32-42; John 18:1) Luke organized his narrative so Jesus' praying in ...

Constable: Luk 22:47-53 - --2. Judas' betrayal 22:47-53 (cf. Matt. 26:47-56; Mark 14:43-52; John 18:2-12) 22:47-48 All the synoptic evangelists noted the close connection between...

Constable: Luk 22:54--23:26 - --E. The trials of Jesus 22:54-23:25 The following table identifies the aspects of Jesus' two trials that ...

Constable: Luk 22:54-62 - --1. Peter's denial of Jesus 22:54-62 (cf. Matt. 26:69-75; Mark 14:66-72; John 18:15-18, 25-27) Luke placed Peter's denial ahead of Jesus' trial before ...

Constable: Luk 22:63-65 - --2. The mockery of the soldiers 22:63-65 (cf. Matt. 26:67-68; Mark 14:65) Evidently this mockery ...

Constable: Luk 22:66-71 - --3. Jesus' trial before the Sanhedrin 22:66-71 (cf. Matt. 27:1; Mark 15:1a) Luke is the only Gospel writer who gave us an account of what happened at t...

College: Luk 22:1-71 - --LUKE 22 VII. JESUS' SUFFERING AND DEATH (22:1-23:56) A. JUDAS AGREES TO BETRAY JESUS (22:1-6) 1 Now the Feast of Unleavened Bread, called the Pass...

McGarvey: Luk 22:1-6 - -- CXVI. JESUS PREDICTS, THE RULERS PLOT FOR, AND JUDAS BARGAINS FOR HIS DEATH. (Mount of Olives, Bethany, and Jerusalem. Tuesday after sunset, which Je...

McGarvey: Luk 22:7-30 - -- CXVII. PREPARATION FOR PASSOVER. DISCIPLES CONTEND FOR PRECEDENCE. (Bethany to Jerusalem. Thursday afternoon and, after sunset, beginning of Friday.)...

McGarvey: Luk 22:19-20 - -- CXX. THE LORD'S SUPPER INSTITUTED. (Jerusalem. Evening before the crucifixion.) aMATT. XXVI. 26-29; bMARK XIV. 22-25; cLUKE XXII. 19, 20; fI. COR. XI...

McGarvey: Luk 22:21-38 - -- CXIX. JUDAS' BETRAYAL AND PETER'S DENIAL FORETOLD. (Jerusalem. Evening before the crucifixion.) aMATT. XXVI. 21-25, 31-35; bMARK XIV. 18-21, 27-31; c...

McGarvey: Luk 22:39-46 - -- CXXIII. GOING TO GETHSEMANE, AND AGONY THEREIN. (A garden between the brook Kidron and the Mount of Olives. Late Thursday night.) aMATT. XXVI. 30, 36...

McGarvey: Luk 22:47-53 - -- CCXXIV. JESUS BETRAYED, ARRESTED, AND FORSAKEN. (Gethsemane. Friday, several hours before dawn.) aMATT. XXVI. 47-56; bMARK XIV. 43-52; cLUKE XXII. 47...

McGarvey: Luk 22:54-65 - -- CXXVI. SECOND STAGE OF JEWISH TRIAL. JESUS CONDEMNED BY CAIAPHAS AND THE SANHEDRIN. (Palace of Caiaphas. Friday.) aMATT. XXVI. 57, 59-68; bMARK XIV. ...

McGarvey: Luk 22:54-62 - -- CXXVII. PETER THRICE DENIES THE LORD. (Court of the high priest's residence. Friday before and about dawn.) aMATT. XXVI. 58, 69-75; bMARK XIV. 54, 66...

McGarvey: Luk 22:66 - -- CXXVIII. THIRD STAGE OF JEWISH TRIAL. JESUS FORMALLY CONDEMNED BY THE SANHEDRIN AND LED TO PILATE. (Jerusalem. Friday after dawn.) aMATT. XXVII. 1, 2...

Lapide: Luk 22:1-71 - --CHAPTER 22 Ver.6.— And he sought opportunity to betray Him unto them. Judas sold Jesus Christ on the fourth day of the week, the day of Mercury; o...

buka semua
Tafsiran/Catatan -- Lainnya

Evidence: Luk 22:31 The purpose of sifting . " In Luk 22:31 , the word sift is translated from the Greek siniazo, meaning ‘to sift, shake in a sieve; by inward agitat...

Evidence: Luk 22:41 Prayer—the secret weapon: See Act 1:14 .

Evidence: Luk 22:42

Evidence: Luk 22:44 This is not just hyperbole like "sweating bullets," but is an actual medical condition known as hematidrosis.

Evidence: Luk 22:45 " He who kneels the most, stands best." D.L. Moody

Evidence: Luk 22:47 Modern evangelism . The Bible tells us that Judas led a " multitude" to Jesus. His motive, however, wasn’t to bring them to the Savior for salvatio...

buka semua
Pendahuluan / Garis Besar

Robertson: Luke (Pendahuluan Kitab) THE GOSPEL OF LUKE By Way of Introduction There is not room here for a full discussion of all the interesting problems raised by Luke as the autho...

JFB: Luke (Pendahuluan Kitab) THE writer of this Gospel is universally allowed to have been Lucas (an abbreviated form of Lucanus, as Silas of Silvanus), though he is not expressly...

JFB: Luke (Garis Besar) ANNOUNCEMENT OF THE FORERUNNER. (Luke 1:5-25) ANNUNCIATION OF CHRIST. (Luk 1:26-38) VISIT OF MARY TO ELISABETH. (Luke 1:39-56) BIRTH AND CIRCUMCISION...

TSK: Luke (Pendahuluan Kitab) Luke, to whom this Gospel has been uniformly attributed from the earliest ages of the Christian church, is generally allowed to have been " the belove...

TSK: Luke 22 (Pendahuluan Pasal) Overview Luk 22:1, The Jews conspire against Christ; Luk 22:3, Satan prepares Judas to betray him; Luk 22:7, The apostles prepare the passover; Lu...

Poole: Luke 22 (Pendahuluan Pasal) CHAPTER 22

MHCC: Luke (Pendahuluan Kitab) This evangelist is generally supposed to have been a physician, and a companion of the apostle Paul. The style of his writings, and his acquaintance w...

MHCC: Luke 22 (Pendahuluan Pasal) (Luk 22:1-6) The treachery of Judas. (Luk 22:7-18) The passover. (Luk 22:19, Luk 22:20) The Lord's supper instituted. (v. 21-38) Christ admonishes ...

Matthew Henry: Luke (Pendahuluan Kitab) An Exposition, with Practical Observations, of The Gospel According to St. Luke We are now entering into the labours of another evangelist; his name ...

Matthew Henry: Luke 22 (Pendahuluan Pasal) All the evangelists, whatever they omit, give us a particular account of the death and resurrection of Christ, because he died for our sins and ros...

Barclay: Luke (Pendahuluan Kitab) INTRODUCTION TO THE GOSPEL ACCORDING TO SAINT LUKE A Lovely Book And Its Author The gospel according to St. Luke has been called the loveliest book ...

Barclay: Luke 22 (Pendahuluan Pasal) And Satan Entered Into Judas (Luk_22:1-6) The Last Meal Together (Luk_22:7-23) Strife Among The Disciples Of Christ (Luk_22:24-30) Peter's Tragedy...

Constable: Luke (Pendahuluan Kitab) Introduction Writer Several factors indicate that the writer of this Gospel was the sa...

Constable: Luke (Garis Besar) Outline I. Introduction 1:1-4 II. The birth and childhood of Jesus 1:5-2:52 ...

Constable: Luke Luke Bibliography Alford, Henry. The Greek Testament. New ed. 4 vols. London: Rivingtons, 1880. ...

Haydock: Luke (Pendahuluan Kitab) THE HOLY GOSPEL OF JESUS CHRIST, ACCORDING TO ST. LUKE. INTRODUCTION St. Luke was a physician, a native of Antioch, the metropolis of Syria, a...

Gill: Luke (Pendahuluan Kitab) INTRODUCTION TO LUKE The writer of this Gospel, Luke, has been, by some, thought, as Origen a relates, to be the same with Lucius, mentioned in Ro...

College: Luke (Pendahuluan Kitab) FOREWORD "Many have undertaken" to write commentaries on the Gospel of Luke, and a large number of these are very good. "It seemed good also to me" t...

College: Luke (Garis Besar) OUTLINE There is general agreement among serious students of Luke's Gospel regarding its structure. I. Prologue Luke 1:1-4 II. Infancy Narrative...

Lapide: Luke (Pendahuluan Kitab) S. LUKE'S GOSPEL Third Edition JOHN HODGES, AGAR STREET, CHARING CROSS, LONDON. 1892. INTRODUCTION. ——o—— THE Holy Gospel of Jesus Ch...

Advanced Commentary (Kamus, Lagu-Lagu Himne, Gambar, Ilustrasi Khotbah, Pertanyaan-Pertanyaan, dll)


TIP #02: Coba gunakan wildcards "*" atau "?" untuk hasil pencarian yang leb?h bai*. [SEMUA]
dibuat dalam 5.19 detik
dipersembahkan oleh
bible.org - YLSA